SEARCH!
Id Vlad Saved Scrape Time Status Scrape Result Original Ad Adarchiveid Creative Links Title Body Cta Type Link Url Pageid Page Name Page Profile Uri Page Like Count Collationcount Collationid Currency Enddate Entitytype Fevinfo Gatedtype Hasuserreported Hiddensafetydata Hidedatastatus Impressionstext Impressionsindex Isaaaeligible Isactive Isprofilepage Cta Text Pageinfo Pageisdeleted Pagename Reachestimate Reportcount Ad Creative Byline Caption Dynamic Versions Effective Authorization Category Display Format Link Description Link Url Page Welcome Message Creation Time Page Profile Picture Url Page Entity Type Page Is Profile Page Instagram Actor Name Instagram Profile Pic Url Instagram Url Instagram Handle Is Reshared Version Branded Content Current Page Name Disclaimer Label Page Is Deleted Root Reshared Post Additional Info Ec Certificates Country Iso Code Instagram Branded Content Spend Startdate Statemediarunlabel Actions
2,357,250
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 Read next chapter๐Ÿ‘‰ After shedding the shackles of marriage, she transformed from a dull housewife into a famous painter with countless admirers. Her ex-husband came to her house to seek reconciliation, only to see her being embraced by a famous tycoon, "Say hello to your sister-in-law!" ===== In the dimly lit, opulent private cinema, the most exclusive jewelry auction was being broadcast live. "One million, going once, going twice--" The rich cadence of the auctioneer's voice echoed through the room, the man tightened his grip around Alicia Bennett's waist... With the intensity between them only grew fiercer as time passed... The auctioneer's gavel fell. "Sold for ten million! Let's give a round of applause to Mr. Joshua Yates!" The name struck Alicia like a lightning bolt. Her body instantly went rigid, something that the man couldn't help but notice, flicked lazily toward the screen. The camera zoomed in on Joshua Yates's face, every detail of his familiar features displayed in perfect clarity. "Joshua Yates, the second son of the Yates family... an acquaintance perhaps?" he drawled, the corners of his mouth tugging into a sly smile. Alicia's frown deepened. The last thing she wanted was to discuss it, she didn't respond. The man, upon seeing the situation, chuckled lightly before his movements grew even more relentless... ...... When it was over, Alicia took advantage of the man's time in the shower and quietly made her escape. When Caden Ward finally emerged from the bathroom, not catching sight of the woman's figure, he curled his lips slightly. Moments later, his assistant, Hank Ford, burst into the room, clearly on edge, "Er, apologies, Mr. Ward. I let my guard down. Give me a moment, and I'll have her brought back immediately." They had just returned to the country, taking every precaution. And yet, a woman had managed to slip through the cracks of their security. Caden's features calm, almost indifferent. "No need. I was... a willing participant." Hank's eyes widened in shock. In all the time he'd known Caden, the man had never slept with a woman,even physical contact. There were even rumors that Caden might suffer from some secret ailment. Yet now, those whispers seemed to evaporate in the face of this unexpected turn of events. Before Hank could make sense of it, Caden's deep voice pulled him back to reality. "I want you to look into Joshua's personal life. Have the report on my desk in half an hour." Tonight, Alicia had stumbled into his room, feverish and desperate. It was obvious she'd been framed. And then came the revelation--Alicia was still a pureness. Two years of marriage to Joshua... Yet she was still untouched? Caden's lips curled into a satisfied smile. But as he reflected, one thing became abundantly clear--Alicia had no idea who she'd been with due to the d*ug's effects. ... By the time Alicia returned home, the first light of dawn filtered through the windows. Only then did she realize how long she had been out. But before she could dwell any further, her phone rang. It was her bestie, Monica Flynn, calling. "Alicia!" Monica practically screeched from the other end of the line, her voice high-pitched with worry. "How are you now?" Alicia exhaled deeply, kicking off her shoes carelessly. "I've been better," she murmured. Monica's anger bubbled over, her words sharp and unrelenting. "Joshua's beyond disgusting! If he doesn't want to stay married, he should just grow a spine and divorce you already! What kind of sick man would scheme against his own wife?" The sharp pain of betrayal shot through Alicia's chest. Yesterday was their second anniversary. Joshua had texted her, suggesting they celebrate. Daring to hope he had changed, she had dressed up to the nine's, only to be met with disappointment and a d*ug-laced drink that sent her spiraling into a night of confusion and chaos. Was Joshua really the mastermind behind this? Swallowing the bitterness that tried clawing its way to the surface, Alicia forced herself to climb the stairs, her movements slow and weary. "It's fine, Monica. I'll handle it." Monica, ever protective, wasn't convinced. "'Handle it'? What do you mean you'll handle it? Just say the word, and I'll be over in a heartbeat." Alicia couldn't help the small, tired smile that tugged at her lips, hanging up the phone. But her heart still felt heavy, just as she lost focus, the door to her bedroom creaked open. She lifted her gaze, and almost instantly, her stomach dropped. There, fresh from a shower, a towel wrapped loosely around his waist, stood Joshua. He stared down at her. Chapter 2 Divorce Alicia snapped out of her daze as soon as she met the icy gaze of Joshua, her so-called husband. His expression remained unchanged, cold and indifferent as ever, as though he was looking at a stranger. The only thing out of place was the scars on his lips. A wave of disgust washed over her, she pushed him away and was about to enter. Joshua frowned, his hand shooting out to grab her wrist. "Alicia, what's with the attitude?" He seemed quite unhappy with her this time, which was a rare thing, considering how little he bothered to come home. Normally, Alicia would have welcomed him back with open arms, a flicker of joy lighting up her tired features, but today she looked drained, almost hollow. She didn't resist his grip, meeting his gaze with a calmness that unnerved him. "Haven't I always been like this? Obedient, sensible, making sure the house is in order, ensuring you're comfortable, ready to give your best at work." A small, bitter smile tugged at her lips. "Isn't that what you like most about me? It makes things easier for you, doesn't it? Frees up time for your other... 'special someone'." Joshua's eyes darkened at the veiled accusation. Denial hovered on his lips, but he didn't bother. Why should he? He dropped her hand and said gruffly, "Actually, that's why I'm here. We need to talk." Alicia vigorously rubbed her wrist, as though she was trying to erase his touch. "So, are you planning to finally go public with her?" Joshua's expression twisted instantly, his calm facade cracking. "What do you know? Did you have me stalked by a private investigator or something?" Alicia let out a soft, humorless laugh. "Is that necessary? Last night, you spared no expense to make her happy. Even a blind person could tell you're mad about her." He stared at her, unsettled by her icy tone. It was still her voice, still Alicia, but there was something different about her... For some reason, he felt inexplicably hurt, like a thorn pricking his heart. Perhaps it was the way she looked at him now--her eyes, once warm and filled with love for him, were now completely empty. There was no anger, no pain, just... nothing. It was a stark contrast to the woman who used to look at him as if he were her entire world. For reasons he couldn't explain, the sight of her like this stirred something in him, an unfamiliar dissatisfaction. Annoyed by his own reaction, Joshua decided to hit back, his voice harder now. "She's pregnant. It's a delicate pregnancy, so I bought her a little something to lift her spirits." Alicia's fists clenched before she could stop them. P**gnant? So, the nights she had stayed up waiting for him to come home, he'd been with another woman, working diligently to start a new family? Seeing Alicia wince a little, Joshua felt a flicker of satisfaction. "It's not that I don't want to touch you," he said, voice dripping with condescension. "You're just about as thrilling as watching paint dry. No man would want that." His cruel words pierced through Alicia, yet she managed to remain composed on the surface. It wasn't that she avoided intimacy; she just wasn't the one to initiate it. Did that make her so undesirable? Was it a sin? Taking a slow, steady breath, Alicia willed herself to stay calm. "Fine," she replied quietly. "Let's get a divorce then. You can give her the title she wants." The word "divorce" made Joshua's eyelid twitch involuntarily. He scoffed, eyes narrowing with suspicion. "Is this another one of your games?" Convinced he was right, his voice grew colder, more biting. "Alicia, for two years, you've pulled every childish stunt, begging for my attention. Aren't you tired yet? Because I sure as hell am." He paused, letting his disdain sink in. "You claim to love me so much. Could you really walk away from me?" Alicia couldn't help the bitter laugh that escaped her. Love him? Did he even understand what that meant? When Joshua's business had crumbled, leaving him with nothing but debt and shattered dreams, it had been Alicia who emptied her savings to pull him from the wreckage. Out of gratitude--or maybe obligation--he had married her. For two long years, she had been the dutiful wife, supporting him as he clawed his way to success. And what had Alicia gotten in return? She had been cast aside like a useless relic, while another woman carried his child. Her love, her loyalty, had been ground into the dirt beneath his feet. To care for this man any longer would be masochism. Her voice steady, Alicia said, "Draft the divorce agreement. I'll agree to whatever terms you want." And with that, she turned and disappeared through the door, leaving Joshua standing alone in the hallway. For a moment, he stared after her angrily, but then a cold, mocking smile tugged at his lips. Fine, she can play the martyr. He doubted she could keep it up for long. Storming out of the house, Joshua headed straight to the apartment where his lover, Lilliana Green, awaited him. "Well, that was fast," she teased upon hearing Joshua was getting a divorce, raising a brow. "Seems she wasn't as tough to deal with as you claimed." "She's cunning," Joshua muttered, the edge of suspicion creeping into his voice. "I don't know if she's actually agreeing to the divorce or just playing me." Lilliana's arms draping lazily around his neck, "Relax, Joshua, even if she changes her mind, it's too late." Joshua's brow furrowed. "What do you mean?" Chapter 3 Letting Go Lilliana's eyes flickered with shadowy intent. She wasn't foolish enough to show her cards now, so she waved it off with an effortless excuse. "During your two-year marriage, she has lived quietly in the shadows as a mere housewife, disconnected from your world. When you're assertive, would she dare to say a word?" Joshua pursed his lips into a hard line. During the past two years, Alicia had indeed done everything for him--given him support and solace. She had loved him fiercely, but at the end of it all, what value did love truly hold? Against all odds, he had clawed his way to the top, and he'd finally grasped the power he craved. That success, however, hadn't come easy, and it wasn't love that secured his position--it was alliances with the powerful. The prestige of the Green family daughter, that title alone, was worth far more than Alicia's devoted love. As these thoughts plagued his mind, Lilliana said happily, "Joshua, congratulations on escaping the grind. Shall we celebrate?" For a moment, Joshua's gaze flickered down to her, but Alicia's indifferent face suddenly flashed before his eyes. Since leaving the house earlier, Alicia hadn't once called him to ask for his whereabouts. Before, if he had been upset with her, she would've called him in a panic. A sharp, inexplicable irritation surged within him. Without thinking, he pushed Lilliana back, "You're only a few weeks' pregnant. Be careful." Lilliana, sharp as ever, sensed he was distracted. "Joshua, what's wrong?" she asked gently. "Don't you want to get divorced?" Joshua's response was instant. "Of course I want to divorce her." Her eyes narrowed as she studied him. "Then why don't you seem very happy?" Joshua offered a quick excuse, his voice steady but distant. "My father's condition has worsened. He doesn't have much time left, and Caden returned last night. He's likely here to claim his inheritance. I need to figure out how to handle him." Lilliana blinked, momentarily thrown. "Caden? Your brother from your father's first marriage? He doesn't even carry the Yates name anymore. What right does he have to fight you for the inheritance?" Joshua's expression darkened. It was true--but at the end of the day, he was still the son of a home-wrecker. All these years of relentless effort had not only been to carve out a name for himself in the Yates family, but to push Caden into the shadows where he belonged. One way or another, Joshua was hell-bent on winning. Meanwhile, Alicia stirred from her sleep. Darkness had already fallen, yet she felt even more drained than before. It was because her dreams revolved around that stranger. when her phone buzzed with a call from Monica did she snap out of her daze. "Alicia, I got your bl**d test results. I passed them to a friend of mine with some serious connections. He's digging around to see who bought the stuff." Alicia sat up a little straighter, her mind sharpening. "Thanks, Monica. Appreciate it." "If you really want to thank me, do me a favor: stop obsessing over that j**k. And after the divorce, focus on your career. You owe me that much." Alicia's chest warmed, her head lowering in quiet gratitude. "I know, I know." Now that she thought about it, she had come to the realization that her feelings for Joshua had never been pure love--they were born out of a debt, a sense of obligation. Her family's expectations had always weighed heavily on her, and in that lonely, stifled childhood, it was Joshua who had been there. His companionship had nurtured a vague affection she'd confused for love. "Lucky for me, love's never been something I've held onto tightly," Alicia murmured. "These last two years... I'll just see it as repaying his kindness." Monica paused, her usual boldness tempered with thoughtfulness. She knew better than anyone how, once upon a time, Joshua had indeed loved Alicia. But, it turned out love could be a fleeting thing. "Alicia, I really hope you've let go for good," Monica said with a convicted sigh. A sharp pang hit Alicia's chest, her eyes stinging as she fought back the urge to cry. Quickly, she pressed her hand to her eyelids, refusing to let the tears fall. It was only then she noticed something startling. Stunned, she stared at her hand. The wedding ring--something she had once held onto so tightly--was gone. Gone for a whole day and night, and she hadn't even noticed. Suddenly, her heart felt lighter, the weight of everything she'd been carrying beginning to lift. She whispered, more to herself than anyone, "Yes, I've truly let go." ... It didn't take long for Joshua to notice. He had returned to grab something quickly when his eyes fell on her hand. His brow furrowed as he asked, without thinking, "Where's your wedding ring?" Chapter 4 Her Nemesis Alicia's only concern now was leaving Joshua, so she ignored his question and asked flatly, "Are the divorce papers ready yet?" That word again--"divorce". Irritation flickered across Joshua's eyes. "What's the rush?" he snapped, his voice cold and sharp. "My father's finalizing his will, and if word gets out about my divorce, it'll ruin my standing. Now, pack your things--we're having dinner at the Yates Mansion this afternoon." With Caden's return, the family was throwing a welcome-home dinner for him. They also hoped that by doing so, it'd lift the spirits of Jerald Yates, Joshua's father. However, maintaining the charade of a happy marriage was the last thing on Alicia's mind. "I'm not going," she announced curtly. "Just get the divorce finalized and stop wasting my time." Joshua laughed, a sound that held no warmth. "Oh, come on, Alicia. Stop pretending. You hid the ring because you don't actually want to leave me, right? You can't stand the thought of being without me." He leaned in, smirking, and added, "You've worked hard these past two years. Even if we divorce, I'll still take care of you--as long as you keep me happy." Alicia's eyes widened, disbelief turning into anger. Hid the ring? Couldn't bear to be without him? His arrogant words sounded like nails on a chalkboard to Alicia's ears. With a sharp sneer, she shot back, "Oh, Mr. Yates, how could I possibly make you happy? Don't worry, I'll return the ring--wouldn't want this plain Jane to irk you, right? Once you have it, we're finalizing the divorce immediately." But Joshua wasn't fazed by her venom. He thought he knew her too well, convinced this was just another ploy to get his attention. Without thinking too much, he tossed a bag at her. "We've got guests today. Dress appropriately, and don't make me look bad." Alicia looked down at the bag, her mind flashing back to the countless times she had visited the mansion dressed in modest, unassuming clothes-- doing everything to blend in, to please him and his family. But now, with their divorce looming on the horizon, Alicia no longer cared to play the part of a dutiful wife. After slipping into the outfit, she carefully applied a touch of makeup, just enough to bring out the vibrance in her already flawless complexion. The subtle enhancements accentuated her smooth skin and delicate features, lending her a certain glow. When Joshua saw her descending the staircase, he froze for a brief moment, eyes lingering. Perhaps it was the way the dress hugged Alicia's graceful curves, making her seem more alluring than usual. At the entrance of the Yates Mansion, they both slipped into their familiar roles, masking the tension between them with practiced ease. Alicia casually looped her arm through Joshua's, their movements synchronized as they walked into the courtyard. Though Jerald was too ill to receive anyone, the grand hall bustled with life, relatives filling the space with chatter. The noise hummed around her, but for some reason, as soon as Alicia crossed the threshold, a sharp chill pricked at her skin. She instinctively looked up, her gaze immediately drawn to the figure lounging casually at the far end of the room. Legs crossed, dark shirt unbuttoned just enough to reveal a sliver of his collarbone, the man oozed arrogance, his presence commanding. When Alicia's eyes finally met his-- a familiar, authoritative stare that pinned her in place-- her mind raced as emotions began to surge uncontrollably. Joshua noticed the shift in her demeanor, his brows furrowing as he asked, "What's going on with you?" Alicia's breath caught in her throat. One word escaped her lips, barely audible. "Caden?" Just the mention of his name sent a chill down her spine. To her, Caden was the embodiment of her nightmares. Due to their families' friendship, their paths first crossed at the tender age of ten. Caden, having taken a year off, transferred to her school, and from that moment, Alicia's perfect world began to unravel. She could no longer claim the top spot. No matter how relentless her efforts, no matter how late she stayed up studying, Caden was always a step ahead. He would outscore her by the smallest of margins--a point, maybe two--leaving her perpetually stranded in second place. Anyone else might have accepted defeat, settled into the role of runner-up. But not Alicia. Born into the once prestigious Bennett family, she was raised under the suffocating weight of living up to her family name. Excellence wasn't just a goal--it was the currency by which she could earn her parents' affection. Failure was not an option, yet Caden had the audacity to snatch away everything she'd worked for with what seemed like effortless ease. It was as if he'd set his sights on her from the very beginning, and Alicia, stubborn to a fault, refused to back down. Their rivalry spanned over a decade, a relentless battle fought both openly and in the shadows, and their final showdown took place in college, just before their graduation, at the national competition. Alicia poured her heart and soul into that moment, her focus razor-sharp as she aimed for nothing less than perfection. And she achieved it, having garnered a perfect score. But Caden, ever the serpent, had bribed the judges, twisting the results in his favor. Alicia was forced, once again, into second place. The sting of injustice was deep, but the harshest blow came from her father, Phil Bennett. Over the phone, his voice dripped with disappointment in her ranking. Alicia, having grown accustomed to his tirades, said nothing. She waited for his anger to ebb, then asked quietly, "I'm graduating soon. Will you come back?" Her mother, Donna, had always been her softer solace. She comforted Alicia that day, promising they'd be there for her graduation. But life had other plans. Phil and Donna, rushing back from Itrubisite to attend the graduation, perished in a tragic plane crash. Overnight, Alicia's world crumbled, left an orphan in this cruel world. Since that day, she had never challenged Caden again. Afterward, Caden left Warrington to build his career overseas. ... "He's back for the inheritance," Joshua muttered, his voice barely audible. Alicia cast him a sidelong glance as he continued, "With a family empire as big as ours, an eldest son like him wouldn't give up so easily." Her brow furrowed slightly. It was true--the Yates empire was massive, a legacy most would kill for. But Caden had accumulated his own fortune, surpassing even the family's vast wealth. Did he really care about the inheritance? Then again, this was Caden. Competing was in his blood. Even if he didn't care about the fortune itself, he'd fight tooth and nail just to win, to toy with everyone else. The man had a knack for stirring chaos purely for his own amusement. Alicia had been his rival for as long as she could remember, and even now, the thought of giving him so much as a glance felt like a waste of energy. She turned to walk away. But Joshua caught her wrist, his grip firm yet tense. "I know you two don't get along," he said. "But he's still my elder brother. We need to maintain appearances." Her body stiffened at the touch, and she immediately tried to pull her hand free. Joshua's frown deepened. "Alicia, behave," he hissed. Irritation flared in her chest. "I'm not refusing to go in. Just let go of me first. I don't want your filthy hands touching me." A flicker of something dark passed over Joshua's face, and instead of releasing her, he intertwined their fingers, squeezing them tight. Alicia bit her tongue, silently fuming. As they neared, Caden's gaze slowly lifted, his eyes narrowing in a lazy, almost bored assessment of them. "Caden," Joshua greeted, his tone strained, meeting his brother's gaze with forced cordiality. Caden's eyes flicked to their entwined hands, a smirk tugging at the corner of his mouth. "Your girlfriend?" he asked indifferently, as though he didn't recognize Alicia. Chapter 5 We Meet Again So Soon Alicia's nerves coiled tight like a spring. That voice... Her messy thoughts blurred into chaos, but one thing broke through the haze--Joshua's calm declaration. "Alicia and I have been married for two years now. She cares about me, so we kept it low-key. Just went straight for the registration; no ceremony. You were busy abroad at the time, so we didn't bother you." Caden arched a brow, his voice laced with venomous mockery. "Oh, so she's my sister-in-law." The way he spat the words "sister-in-law" felt more like a s*ap than a title, leaving no doubt about his contempt for her. Alicia could feel the man's sneer underneath every syllable. And all this was thanks to her so-called husband, Joshua. Her hand trembled as she snatched a tissue, vigorously wiping her hand. "Looks like Alicia's a bit of a germophobe," Caden observed, his tone a casual jab at her disgust. Joshua's expression darkened, the tension between them thickening. He hadn't expected her to humiliate him like this. "It seems I've spoiled her too much," he muttered, his voice low and tight with irritation. Caden's eyes gleamed with a dangerous glint. "If it's a serious condition, she should get treated. It could impact her role as a mother. You know how badly our father has wanted a grandchild." At this, something flickered across Joshua's eyes. Even though Alicia, his wife, was right beside him, he went ahead and lied through his teeth. "Thanks for the concern, Caden, but I already have good news for Dad. I just haven't gotten around to telling him yet." Caden's smirk deepened, his gaze flicking toward Alicia, who was about done with the bullshit of a charade. She quietly excused herself and strode off. "How far along is she?" he asked meaningfully. "Doesn't seem like she's pregnant." Joshua didn't miss a beat. "Just a month." The answer was as much a threat as it was an announcement. Now, the inheritance stakes had just been raised, and Jerald, ever focused on continuing the family line, would certainly take his unborn grandchild into consideration. Caden's smile hardened, and Joshua delivered the final blow with a smug undertone. "You'd better catch up, Caden. I can't always be one step ahead." Caden, unfazed, waved his hand lazily. "No rush." ... Alicia stepped onto the terrace, the cool night breeze washing over her skin. She drank in the fresh air hungrily to steady her nerves. Pulling out her phone, she quickly dialed the manager of the private cinema again. "Have you found the ring?" she asked anxiously. The manager hesitated, sounding troubled. "Ms. Bennett, we've searched thoroughly and questioned all the staff, but... we really couldn't find any ring." "Then..." Alicia clenched her fist, her mind racing. "Do you have the contact details of the guest who booked the room that day?" "I'm sorry, but due to our privacy policy, we can't disclose any information on our clients." Her heart sank. "I see," she sighed with resignation. "Please tell me immediately if anything turns up, okay?" In a perfect world, she could've just bought an identical ring and pass it off for the original. Unfortunately, Joshua had that ring custom-made, and it wasn't easy to replicate. After dinner, it started to rain. The relatives began to trickle out one by one. Joshua stood by her side as they made their way to the car, his eyes trailing down to her bare wrist. "If you liked that bracelet at the auction, then I can buy you something like it," he said coolly. Alicia had to resist the urge to roll her eyes sardonically. She didn't believe for a second that Joshua had a change of heart towards her. "Trying to buy my silence, huh?" Her words were sharp, slicing right through Joshua's tender facade. "No need. I have no desire to be tangled up in your affairs." Joshua hadn't intended to sound like that, but her mocking tone struck a nerve. His jaw clenched, and a bitter smile crossed his lips. "Fine. Don't take it. The money I spend on you is a waste anyway." Alicia bit the inside of her cheek before adding firmly, "Joshua, I already told you. I'm willing to leave this marriage empty-handed. Let's sign the divorce papers tomorrow morning and end this once and for all." His smile twisted into something dark, something dangerous. "What about the ring?" "I lost it." Joshua's eyes narrowed, his tone unrelenting. "I don't care about anything else. I want the ring." She could barely contain her frustration, her breath hitching as he delivered his final blow. "If you can't find it," he said coldly, "I'll assume you're holding onto it because you still care about me." Just then, Joshua's phone rang; it was Lilliana calling. "Joshua." She mewled his name pitifully. "The thunder is so loud. I'm scared to sleep alone... Can you come over?" The car wasn't heading anywhere near Lilliana's and Joshua was furious with Alicia, so without a second thought, he kicked her out into the rain and sped off. He didn't even leave her an umbrella. Alicia stood frozen by the roadside, the downpour quickly soaking through her clothes. The cold rain seeped into her bones, chilling her to the core. Gritting her chattering teeth, she swallowed the bitter taste in her mouth and began trudging along the drenched pavement. Behind her, the soft hum of an engine crept closer. A sleek, low-profile Maybach rolled up beside her, its headlights cutting through the rain. "Mr. Ward," the driver said, glancing back, "I believe that's Ms. Bennett." The car slowed to a stop. Caden glanced out the window, his sharp eyes narrowing on Alicia's lonesome figure. She had just paused, her fingers gathering the fabric of her soaked dress, tying it up to ease her stride. Caden's lips curled into a faint. "Invite her inside," he drawled. The car came to a halt next to Alicia. The driver stepped out, holding a large umbrella over her head, his voice polite. "Ms. Bennett, it's hard to find a cab at this hour. May I offer you a ride home?" Alicia's eyes flicked up, recognizing the man as the Yates family's driver. She hesitated for a moment before nodding, her voice soft but steady. "Thank you. Sorry for the inconvenience." However, as soon as she slipped into the backseat of the car, she locked eyes with its other passenger--Caden. "We meet again so soon, sister-in-law?" His voice, smooth as velvet, carried a hint of mischief. ...... What happens next? Available chapters here are limited, click the button below to install the App and enjoy more exciting chapters (Automatically jump to this novel when you open the app) &5& LEARN_MORE https://fbweb.moboreader.net/63310322-fb_contact-e Hello reading https://www.facebook.com/61552535188096/ 49,485 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 fbweb.moboreader.net IMAGE https://fbweb.moboreader.net/63310322-fb_contact-ena265_2-1019-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=124213&accid=798859118295947&rawadid=120216696115720091 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465246817_1066558478207393_2879110460411324835_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=ZfovLt7IeqMQ7kNvgGBypCP&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=APp5xE_6hWskmaZH5WIi3t5&oh=00_AYChwqxpNhrDhJESCTBTZ3P_OicCduYi27IFgpMSSUiTaA&oe=67307BA5 PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Hello reading 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,068
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357052}'
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 โค๏ธ๐Ÿ˜What happens next๐Ÿ‘‰Click Here to read on๐Ÿ‘‰ "Goodnight baby." My best friend Bryson fixed the soft cover over me. But I didn't expect the night came this way. "Bryson, what are you doing here?" I whispered and opened my sleepy eyes, looking into his startling green eyes that shone with love. I must be dreaming. Why was he staring at me with so much love? Bryson takes a step forward, his eyes darkening with lust when they fall to my parted mouth. I let out a gasp of air from the intensity of the fire of desire swirling in his foresty gaze. His eyes cause my body to burn with heat and I bit my bottom mouth to stop myself from moaning out loud. I'm like a flickering match under the weight of his stare and when he spoke in a husky tone next, I burn alive. "Em, I want you," He groaned, his eyes darkening until they swirled with red. His wolf was aroused too. It wasn't only him. "I've wanted you for so long. I want you Em. I want you so badly it hurts." His hands reach up and he bunches his shirt in his hand. Where his heart beat. "I want you and I'm going to claim you. I'm claiming you as mine Em. You're mine, I knew it. You're my luna- - I gasped, my upper half snapping up in a sitting position. I gripped the covers around my body as I try to relax my pounding heart. Great Em, now you're dreaming of your best friend claiming you.... You can't be any more obsessed than this. Pang. My brows furrowed. Pang. Another pang cracks the silence in the room. The only person or should I say wolf who would do this was none other than my best friend. The boy I just dreamt about. "Now can you tell me why you're here so late?" I asked, trying to move his attention away from me. "I came here for you." "What?" I breathed out, my heart rate kicking up a notch. Bryson voiced. "I can't sleep. I desired to see you-" That word. Desire.... He clears his throat and lifts his hand in his hair where he scratches behind his nape. "I want you to join me for a run Em." I looked around. "It' really not a good idea to be here with you, especially since in a few days there's going to be your ceremony." And he'll be mated... "Let's go to our special place." He murmured. LEARN_MORE https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=14662&u Galaxy in the Story https://www.facebook.com/61555427913037/ 1,481 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 wwwedb.com DCO https://wwwedb.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=14662&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/462593743_554049917280327_1091688798459121906_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=106&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=cvSxNSb15JkQ7kNvgEfhQYN&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AO7J1sWo9BhTHZ5Eu9_Cf8i&oh=00_AYCEP1hLEcaEeWUDdjiZW8WpsjJhdkjVd3l-rF77Simsng&oe=67306B4D PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Galaxy in the Story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,742
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2356895}'
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”žAttention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐Ÿ‘‰ ๐Ÿ’”My fated mate is my deceased sisterโ€™s boyfriend? The guy who accused me of killing my own sister and caused me to be tortured and shunned for 6 years? How could that be possible? LEARN_MORE https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&u Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 getokn.com DCO https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/450253454_816199537279779_5081182667160556282_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=106&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=-YpoWZ18RKIQ7kNvgGCQXAP&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AT8S_WeTI5LWrOreHf0R0Wd&oh=00_AYBUnw6J40pwvNCeUj4Epr9ab4tYoQ36LOLs4GVAw0UfhA&oe=67307DDD PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,539
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 Read next chapter On her wedding anniversary, she dressed up for a date but was drugged and manipulated by her husband's mistress, leading to spend a night with a stranger. To her surprise, he turned out to be her husband's half-brother and business rival! ===== In the dimly lit, opulent private cinema, the most exclusive jewelry auction was being broadcast live. "One million, going once, going twice--" The rich cadence of the auctioneer's voice echoed through the room, the man tightened his grip around Alicia Bennett's waist... With the intensity between them only grew fiercer as time passed... The auctioneer's gavel fell. "Sold for ten million! Let's give a round of applause to Mr. Joshua Yates!" The name struck Alicia like a lightning bolt. Her body instantly went rigid, something that the man couldn't help but notice, flicked lazily toward the screen. The camera zoomed in on Joshua Yates's face, every detail of his familiar features displayed in perfect clarity. "Joshua Yates, the second son of the Yates family... an acquaintance perhaps?" he drawled, the corners of his mouth tugging into a sly smile. Alicia's frown deepened. The last thing she wanted was to discuss it, she didn't respond. The man, upon seeing the situation, chuckled lightly before his movements grew even more relentless... ...... When it was over, Alicia took advantage of the man's time in the shower and quietly made her escape. When Caden Ward finally emerged from the bathroom, not catching sight of the woman's figure, he curled his lips slightly. Moments later, his assistant, Hank Ford, burst into the room, clearly on edge, "Er, apologies, Mr. Ward. I let my guard down. Give me a moment, and I'll have her brought back immediately." They had just returned to the country, taking every precaution. And yet, a woman had managed to slip through the cracks of their security. Caden's features calm, almost indifferent. "No need. I was... a willing participant." Hank's eyes widened in shock. In all the time he'd known Caden, the man had never slept with a woman,even physical contact. There were even rumors that Caden might suffer from some secret ailment. Yet now, those whispers seemed to evaporate in the face of this unexpected turn of events. Before Hank could make sense of it, Caden's deep voice pulled him back to reality. "I want you to look into Joshua's personal life. Have the report on my desk in half an hour." Tonight, Alicia had stumbled into his room, feverish and desperate. It was obvious she'd been framed. And then came the revelation--Alicia was still a pureness. Two years of marriage to Joshua... Yet she was still untouched? Caden's lips curled into a satisfied smile. But as he reflected, one thing became abundantly clear--Alicia had no idea who she'd been with due to the d*ug's effects. ... By the time Alicia returned home, the first light of dawn filtered through the windows. Only then did she realize how long she had been out. But before she could dwell any further, her phone rang. It was her bestie, Monica Flynn, calling. "Alicia!" Monica practically screeched from the other end of the line, her voice high-pitched with worry. "How are you now?" Alicia exhaled deeply, kicking off her shoes carelessly. "I've been better," she murmured. Monica's anger bubbled over, her words sharp and unrelenting. "Joshua's beyond disgusting! If he doesn't want to stay married, he should just grow a spine and divorce you already! What kind of sick man would scheme against his own wife?" The sharp pain of betrayal shot through Alicia's chest. Yesterday was their second anniversary. Joshua had texted her, suggesting they celebrate. Daring to hope he had changed, she had dressed up to the nine's, only to be met with disappointment and a d*ug-laced drink that sent her spiraling into a night of confusion and chaos. Was Joshua really the mastermind behind this? Swallowing the bitterness that tried clawing its way to the surface, Alicia forced herself to climb the stairs, her movements slow and weary. "It's fine, Monica. I'll handle it." Monica, ever protective, wasn't convinced. "'Handle it'? What do you mean you'll handle it? Just say the word, and I'll be over in a heartbeat." Alicia couldn't help the small, tired smile that tugged at her lips, hanging up the phone. But her heart still felt heavy, just as she lost focus, the door to her bedroom creaked open. She lifted her gaze, and almost instantly, her stomach dropped. There, fresh from a shower, a towel wrapped loosely around his waist, stood Joshua. He stared down at her. Chapter 2 Divorce Alicia snapped out of her daze as soon as she met the icy gaze of Joshua, her so-called husband. His expression remained unchanged, cold and indifferent as ever, as though he was looking at a stranger. The only thing out of place was the scars on his lips. A wave of disgust washed over her, she pushed him away and was about to enter. Joshua frowned, his hand shooting out to grab her wrist. "Alicia, what's with the attitude?" He seemed quite unhappy with her this time, which was a rare thing, considering how little he bothered to come home. Normally, Alicia would have welcomed him back with open arms, a flicker of joy lighting up her tired features, but today she looked drained, almost hollow. She didn't resist his grip, meeting his gaze with a calmness that unnerved him. "Haven't I always been like this? Obedient, sensible, making sure the house is in order, ensuring you're comfortable, ready to give your best at work." A small, bitter smile tugged at her lips. "Isn't that what you like most about me? It makes things easier for you, doesn't it? Frees up time for your other... 'special someone'." Joshua's eyes darkened at the veiled accusation. Denial hovered on his lips, but he didn't bother. Why should he? He dropped her hand and said gruffly, "Actually, that's why I'm here. We need to talk." Alicia vigorously rubbed her wrist, as though she was trying to erase his touch. "So, are you planning to finally go public with her?" Joshua's expression twisted instantly, his calm facade cracking. "What do you know? Did you have me stalked by a private investigator or something?" Alicia let out a soft, humorless laugh. "Is that necessary? Last night, you spared no expense to make her happy. Even a blind person could tell you're mad about her." He stared at her, unsettled by her icy tone. It was still her voice, still Alicia, but there was something different about her... For some reason, he felt inexplicably hurt, like a thorn pricking his heart. Perhaps it was the way she looked at him now--her eyes, once warm and filled with love for him, were now completely empty. There was no anger, no pain, just... nothing. It was a stark contrast to the woman who used to look at him as if he were her entire world. For reasons he couldn't explain, the sight of her like this stirred something in him, an unfamiliar dissatisfaction. Annoyed by his own reaction, Joshua decided to hit back, his voice harder now. "She's pregnant. It's a delicate pregnancy, so I bought her a little something to lift her spirits." Alicia's fists clenched before she could stop them. P**gnant? So, the nights she had stayed up waiting for him to come home, he'd been with another woman, working diligently to start a new family? Seeing Alicia wince a little, Joshua felt a flicker of satisfaction. "It's not that I don't want to touch you," he said, voice dripping with condescension. "You're just about as thrilling as watching paint dry. No man would want that." His cruel words pierced through Alicia, yet she managed to remain composed on the surface. It wasn't that she avoided intimacy; she just wasn't the one to initiate it. Did that make her so undesirable? Was it a sin? Taking a slow, steady breath, Alicia willed herself to stay calm. "Fine," she replied quietly. "Let's get a divorce then. You can give her the title she wants." The word "divorce" made Joshua's eyelid twitch involuntarily. He scoffed, eyes narrowing with suspicion. "Is this another one of your games?" Convinced he was right, his voice grew colder, more biting. "Alicia, for two years, you've pulled every childish stunt, begging for my attention. Aren't you tired yet? Because I sure as hell am." He paused, letting his disdain sink in. "You claim to love me so much. Could you really walk away from me?" Alicia couldn't help the bitter laugh that escaped her. Love him? Did he even understand what that meant? When Joshua's business had crumbled, leaving him with nothing but debt and shattered dreams, it had been Alicia who emptied her savings to pull him from the wreckage. Out of gratitude--or maybe obligation--he had married her. For two long years, she had been the dutiful wife, supporting him as he clawed his way to success. And what had Alicia gotten in return? She had been cast aside like a useless relic, while another woman carried his child. Her love, her loyalty, had been ground into the dirt beneath his feet. To care for this man any longer would be masochism. Her voice steady, Alicia said, "Draft the divorce agreement. I'll agree to whatever terms you want." And with that, she turned and disappeared through the door, leaving Joshua standing alone in the hallway. For a moment, he stared after her angrily, but then a cold, mocking smile tugged at his lips. Fine, she can play the martyr. He doubted she could keep it up for long. Storming out of the house, Joshua headed straight to the apartment where his lover, Lilliana Green, awaited him. "Well, that was fast," she teased upon hearing Joshua was getting a divorce, raising a brow. "Seems she wasn't as tough to deal with as you claimed." "She's cunning," Joshua muttered, the edge of suspicion creeping into his voice. "I don't know if she's actually agreeing to the divorce or just playing me." Lilliana's arms draping lazily around his neck, "Relax, Joshua, even if she changes her mind, it's too late." Joshua's brow furrowed. "What do you mean?" Chapter 3 Letting Go Lilliana's eyes flickered with shadowy intent. She wasn't foolish enough to show her cards now, so she waved it off with an effortless excuse. "During your two-year marriage, she has lived quietly in the shadows as a mere housewife, disconnected from your world. When you're assertive, would she dare to say a word?" Joshua pursed his lips into a hard line. During the past two years, Alicia had indeed done everything for him--given him support and solace. She had loved him fiercely, but at the end of it all, what value did love truly hold? Against all odds, he had clawed his way to the top, and he'd finally grasped the power he craved. That success, however, hadn't come easy, and it wasn't love that secured his position--it was alliances with the powerful. The prestige of the Green family daughter, that title alone, was worth far more than Alicia's devoted love. As these thoughts plagued his mind, Lilliana said happily, "Joshua, congratulations on escaping the grind. Shall we celebrate?" For a moment, Joshua's gaze flickered down to her, but Alicia's indifferent face suddenly flashed before his eyes. Since leaving the house earlier, Alicia hadn't once called him to ask for his whereabouts. Before, if he had been upset with her, she would've called him in a panic. A sharp, inexplicable irritation surged within him. Without thinking, he pushed Lilliana back, "You're only a few weeks' pregnant. Be careful." Lilliana, sharp as ever, sensed he was distracted. "Joshua, what's wrong?" she asked gently. "Don't you want to get divorced?" Joshua's response was instant. "Of course I want to divorce her." Her eyes narrowed as she studied him. "Then why don't you seem very happy?" Joshua offered a quick excuse, his voice steady but distant. "My father's condition has worsened. He doesn't have much time left, and Caden returned last night. He's likely here to claim his inheritance. I need to figure out how to handle him." Lilliana blinked, momentarily thrown. "Caden? Your brother from your father's first marriage? He doesn't even carry the Yates name anymore. What right does he have to fight you for the inheritance?" Joshua's expression darkened. It was true--but at the end of the day, he was still the son of a home-wrecker. All these years of relentless effort had not only been to carve out a name for himself in the Yates family, but to push Caden into the shadows where he belonged. One way or another, Joshua was hell-bent on winning. Meanwhile, Alicia stirred from her sleep. Darkness had already fallen, yet she felt even more drained than before. It was because her dreams revolved around that stranger. when her phone buzzed with a call from Monica did she snap out of her daze. "Alicia, I got your bl**d test results. I passed them to a friend of mine with some serious connections. He's digging around to see who bought the stuff." Alicia sat up a little straighter, her mind sharpening. "Thanks, Monica. Appreciate it." "If you really want to thank me, do me a favor: stop obsessing over that j**k. And after the divorce, focus on your career. You owe me that much." Alicia's chest warmed, her head lowering in quiet gratitude. "I know, I know." Now that she thought about it, she had come to the realization that her feelings for Joshua had never been pure love--they were born out of a debt, a sense of obligation. Her family's expectations had always weighed heavily on her, and in that lonely, stifled childhood, it was Joshua who had been there. His companionship had nurtured a vague affection she'd confused for love. "Lucky for me, love's never been something I've held onto tightly," Alicia murmured. "These last two years... I'll just see it as repaying his kindness." Monica paused, her usual boldness tempered with thoughtfulness. She knew better than anyone how, once upon a time, Joshua had indeed loved Alicia. But, it turned out love could be a fleeting thing. "Alicia, I really hope you've let go for good," Monica said with a convicted sigh. A sharp pang hit Alicia's chest, her eyes stinging as she fought back the urge to cry. Quickly, she pressed her hand to her eyelids, refusing to let the tears fall. It was only then she noticed something startling. Stunned, she stared at her hand. The wedding ring--something she had once held onto so tightly--was gone. Gone for a whole day and night, and she hadn't even noticed. Suddenly, her heart felt lighter, the weight of everything she'd been carrying beginning to lift. She whispered, more to herself than anyone, "Yes, I've truly let go." ... It didn't take long for Joshua to notice. He had returned to grab something quickly when his eyes fell on her hand. His brow furrowed as he asked, without thinking, "Where's your wedding ring?" Chapter 4 Her Nemesis Alicia's only concern now was leaving Joshua, so she ignored his question and asked flatly, "Are the divorce papers ready yet?" That word again--"divorce". Irritation flickered across Joshua's eyes. "What's the rush?" he snapped, his voice cold and sharp. "My father's finalizing his will, and if word gets out about my divorce, it'll ruin my standing. Now, pack your things--we're having dinner at the Yates Mansion this afternoon." With Caden's return, the family was throwing a welcome-home dinner for him. They also hoped that by doing so, it'd lift the spirits of Jerald Yates, Joshua's father. However, maintaining the charade of a happy marriage was the last thing on Alicia's mind. "I'm not going," she announced curtly. "Just get the divorce finalized and stop wasting my time." Joshua laughed, a sound that held no warmth. "Oh, come on, Alicia. Stop pretending. You hid the ring because you don't actually want to leave me, right? You can't stand the thought of being without me." He leaned in, smirking, and added, "You've worked hard these past two years. Even if we divorce, I'll still take care of you--as long as you keep me happy." Alicia's eyes widened, disbelief turning into anger. Hid the ring? Couldn't bear to be without him? His arrogant words sounded like nails on a chalkboard to Alicia's ears. With a sharp sneer, she shot back, "Oh, Mr. Yates, how could I possibly make you happy? Don't worry, I'll return the ring--wouldn't want this plain Jane to irk you, right? Once you have it, we're finalizing the divorce immediately." But Joshua wasn't fazed by her venom. He thought he knew her too well, convinced this was just another ploy to get his attention. Without thinking too much, he tossed a bag at her. "We've got guests today. Dress appropriately, and don't make me look bad." Alicia looked down at the bag, her mind flashing back to the countless times she had visited the mansion dressed in modest, unassuming clothes-- doing everything to blend in, to please him and his family. But now, with their divorce looming on the horizon, Alicia no longer cared to play the part of a dutiful wife. After slipping into the outfit, she carefully applied a touch of makeup, just enough to bring out the vibrance in her already flawless complexion. The subtle enhancements accentuated her smooth skin and delicate features, lending her a certain glow. When Joshua saw her descending the staircase, he froze for a brief moment, eyes lingering. Perhaps it was the way the dress hugged Alicia's graceful curves, making her seem more alluring than usual. At the entrance of the Yates Mansion, they both slipped into their familiar roles, masking the tension between them with practiced ease. Alicia casually looped her arm through Joshua's, their movements synchronized as they walked into the courtyard. Though Jerald was too ill to receive anyone, the grand hall bustled with life, relatives filling the space with chatter. The noise hummed around her, but for some reason, as soon as Alicia crossed the threshold, a sharp chill pricked at her skin. She instinctively looked up, her gaze immediately drawn to the figure lounging casually at the far end of the room. Legs crossed, dark shirt unbuttoned just enough to reveal a sliver of his collarbone, the man oozed arrogance, his presence commanding. When Alicia's eyes finally met his-- a familiar, authoritative stare that pinned her in place-- her mind raced as emotions began to surge uncontrollably. Joshua noticed the shift in her demeanor, his brows furrowing as he asked, "What's going on with you?" Alicia's breath caught in her throat. One word escaped her lips, barely audible. "Caden?" Just the mention of his name sent a chill down her spine. To her, Caden was the embodiment of her nightmares. Due to their families' friendship, their paths first crossed at the tender age of ten. Caden, having taken a year off, transferred to her school, and from that moment, Alicia's perfect world began to unravel. She could no longer claim the top spot. No matter how relentless her efforts, no matter how late she stayed up studying, Caden was always a step ahead. He would outscore her by the smallest of margins--a point, maybe two--leaving her perpetually stranded in second place. Anyone else might have accepted defeat, settled into the role of runner-up. But not Alicia. Born into the once prestigious Bennett family, she was raised under the suffocating weight of living up to her family name. Excellence wasn't just a goal--it was the currency by which she could earn her parents' affection. Failure was not an option, yet Caden had the audacity to snatch away everything she'd worked for with what seemed like effortless ease. It was as if he'd set his sights on her from the very beginning, and Alicia, stubborn to a fault, refused to back down. Their rivalry spanned over a decade, a relentless battle fought both openly and in the shadows, and their final showdown took place in college, just before their graduation, at the national competition. Alicia poured her heart and soul into that moment, her focus razor-sharp as she aimed for nothing less than perfection. And she achieved it, having garnered a perfect score. But Caden, ever the serpent, had bribed the judges, twisting the results in his favor. Alicia was forced, once again, into second place. The sting of injustice was deep, but the harshest blow came from her father, Phil Bennett. Over the phone, his voice dripped with disappointment in her ranking. Alicia, having grown accustomed to his tirades, said nothing. She waited for his anger to ebb, then asked quietly, "I'm graduating soon. Will you come back?" Her mother, Donna, had always been her softer solace. She comforted Alicia that day, promising they'd be there for her graduation. But life had other plans. Phil and Donna, rushing back from Itrubisite to attend the graduation, perished in a tragic plane crash. Overnight, Alicia's world crumbled, left an orphan in this cruel world. Since that day, she had never challenged Caden again. Afterward, Caden left Warrington to build his career overseas. ... "He's back for the inheritance," Joshua muttered, his voice barely audible. Alicia cast him a sidelong glance as he continued, "With a family empire as big as ours, an eldest son like him wouldn't give up so easily." Her brow furrowed slightly. It was true--the Yates empire was massive, a legacy most would kill for. But Caden had accumulated his own fortune, surpassing even the family's vast wealth. Did he really care about the inheritance? Then again, this was Caden. Competing was in his blood. Even if he didn't care about the fortune itself, he'd fight tooth and nail just to win, to toy with everyone else. The man had a knack for stirring chaos purely for his own amusement. Alicia had been his rival for as long as she could remember, and even now, the thought of giving him so much as a glance felt like a waste of energy. She turned to walk away. But Joshua caught her wrist, his grip firm yet tense. "I know you two don't get along," he said. "But he's still my elder brother. We need to maintain appearances." Her body stiffened at the touch, and she immediately tried to pull her hand free. Joshua's frown deepened. "Alicia, behave," he hissed. Irritation flared in her chest. "I'm not refusing to go in. Just let go of me first. I don't want your filthy hands touching me." A flicker of something dark passed over Joshua's face, and instead of releasing her, he intertwined their fingers, squeezing them tight. Alicia bit her tongue, silently fuming. As they neared, Caden's gaze slowly lifted, his eyes narrowing in a lazy, almost bored assessment of them. "Caden," Joshua greeted, his tone strained, meeting his brother's gaze with forced cordiality. Caden's eyes flicked to their entwined hands, a smirk tugging at the corner of his mouth. "Your girlfriend?" he asked indifferently, as though he didn't recognize Alicia. Chapter 5 We Meet Again So Soon Alicia's nerves coiled tight like a spring. That voice... Her messy thoughts blurred into chaos, but one thing broke through the haze--Joshua's calm declaration. "Alicia and I have been married for two years now. She cares about me, so we kept it low-key. Just went straight for the registration; no ceremony. You were busy abroad at the time, so we didn't bother you." Caden arched a brow, his voice laced with venomous mockery. "Oh, so she's my sister-in-law." The way he spat the words "sister-in-law" felt more like a s*ap than a title, leaving no doubt about his contempt for her. Alicia could feel the man's sneer underneath every syllable. And all this was thanks to her so-called husband, Joshua. Her hand trembled as she snatched a tissue, vigorously wiping her hand. "Looks like Alicia's a bit of a germophobe," Caden observed, his tone a casual jab at her disgust. Joshua's expression darkened, the tension between them thickening. He hadn't expected her to humiliate him like this. "It seems I've spoiled her too much," he muttered, his voice low and tight with irritation. Caden's eyes gleamed with a dangerous glint. "If it's a serious condition, she should get treated. It could impact her role as a mother. You know how badly our father has wanted a grandchild." At this, something flickered across Joshua's eyes. Even though Alicia, his wife, was right beside him, he went ahead and lied through his teeth. "Thanks for the concern, Caden, but I already have good news for Dad. I just haven't gotten around to telling him yet." Caden's smirk deepened, his gaze flicking toward Alicia, who was about done with the bullshit of a charade. She quietly excused herself and strode off. "How far along is she?" he asked meaningfully. "Doesn't seem like she's pregnant." Joshua didn't miss a beat. "Just a month." The answer was as much a threat as it was an announcement. Now, the inheritance stakes had just been raised, and Jerald, ever focused on continuing the family line, would certainly take his unborn grandchild into consideration. Caden's smile hardened, and Joshua delivered the final blow with a smug undertone. "You'd better catch up, Caden. I can't always be one step ahead." Caden, unfazed, waved his hand lazily. "No rush." ... Alicia stepped onto the terrace, the cool night breeze washing over her skin. She drank in the fresh air hungrily to steady her nerves. Pulling out her phone, she quickly dialed the manager of the private cinema again. "Have you found the ring?" she asked anxiously. The manager hesitated, sounding troubled. "Ms. Bennett, we've searched thoroughly and questioned all the staff, but... we really couldn't find any ring." "Then..." Alicia clenched her fist, her mind racing. "Do you have the contact details of the guest who booked the room that day?" "I'm sorry, but due to our privacy policy, we can't disclose any information on our clients." Her heart sank. "I see," she sighed with resignation. "Please tell me immediately if anything turns up, okay?" In a perfect world, she could've just bought an identical ring and pass it off for the original. Unfortunately, Joshua had that ring custom-made, and it wasn't easy to replicate. After dinner, it started to rain. The relatives began to trickle out one by one. Joshua stood by her side as they made their way to the car, his eyes trailing down to her bare wrist. "If you liked that bracelet at the auction, then I can buy you something like it," he said coolly. Alicia had to resist the urge to roll her eyes sardonically. She didn't believe for a second that Joshua had a change of heart towards her. "Trying to buy my silence, huh?" Her words were sharp, slicing right through Joshua's tender facade. "No need. I have no desire to be tangled up in your affairs." Joshua hadn't intended to sound like that, but her mocking tone struck a nerve. His jaw clenched, and a bitter smile crossed his lips. "Fine. Don't take it. The money I spend on you is a waste anyway." Alicia bit the inside of her cheek before adding firmly, "Joshua, I already told you. I'm willing to leave this marriage empty-handed. Let's sign the divorce papers tomorrow morning and end this once and for all." His smile twisted into something dark, something dangerous. "What about the ring?" "I lost it." Joshua's eyes narrowed, his tone unrelenting. "I don't care about anything else. I want the ring." She could barely contain her frustration, her breath hitching as he delivered his final blow. "If you can't find it," he said coldly, "I'll assume you're holding onto it because you still care about me." Just then, Joshua's phone rang; it was Lilliana calling. "Joshua." She mewled his name pitifully. "The thunder is so loud. I'm scared to sleep alone... Can you come over?" The car wasn't heading anywhere near Lilliana's and Joshua was furious with Alicia, so without a second thought, he kicked her out into the rain and sped off. He didn't even leave her an umbrella. Alicia stood frozen by the roadside, the downpour quickly soaking through her clothes. The cold rain seeped into her bones, chilling her to the core. Gritting her chattering teeth, she swallowed the bitter taste in her mouth and began trudging along the drenched pavement. Behind her, the soft hum of an engine crept closer. A sleek, low-profile Maybach rolled up beside her, its headlights cutting through the rain. "Mr. Ward," the driver said, glancing back, "I believe that's Ms. Bennett." The car slowed to a stop. Caden glanced out the window, his sharp eyes narrowing on Alicia's lonesome figure. She had just paused, her fingers gathering the fabric of her soaked dress, tying it up to ease her stride. Caden's lips curled into a faint. "Invite her inside," he drawled. The car came to a halt next to Alicia. The driver stepped out, holding a large umbrella over her head, his voice polite. "Ms. Bennett, it's hard to find a cab at this hour. May I offer you a ride home?" Alicia's eyes flicked up, recognizing the man as the Yates family's driver. She hesitated for a moment before nodding, her voice soft but steady. "Thank you. Sorry for the inconvenience." However, as soon as she slipped into the backseat of the car, she locked eyes with its other passenger--Caden. "We meet again so soon, sister-in-law?" His voice, smooth as velvet, carried a hint of mischief. ...... What happens next? Available chapters here are limited, click the button below to install the App and enjoy more exciting chapters (Automatically jump to this novel when you open the app) &3& LEARN_MORE https://fbweb.moboreader.net/63310322-fb_contact-e Popular romance stories https://www.facebook.com/100083149047490/ 17,927 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 fbweb.moboreader.net VIDEO https://fbweb.moboreader.net/63310322-fb_contact-ena265_2-1025-core2.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=331118&accid=673595984708315&rawadid=120213486023200033 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/464408682_903218645104633_3372208331279157318_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=aD2CDDaZNqYQ7kNvgG1YmbA&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=ANhPIYDDEd2v9cMtUQQFZNh&oh=00_AYDVAvBuZ5F3JjESFliZZhtsNYvFp9G09hXGl-oBqWkHFA&oe=673064E2 PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Popular romance stories 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,746
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2356895}'
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”žAttention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐Ÿ‘‰ ๐Ÿ’”My fated mate is my deceased sisterโ€™s boyfriend? The guy who accused me of killing my own sister and caused me to be tortured and shunned for 6 years? How could that be possible? LEARN_MORE https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&u Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 getokn.com DCO https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/450253454_816199537279779_5081182667160556282_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=106&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=-YpoWZ18RKIQ7kNvgGCQXAP&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AT8S_WeTI5LWrOreHf0R0Wd&oh=00_AYBUnw6J40pwvNCeUj4Epr9ab4tYoQ36LOLs4GVAw0UfhA&oe=67307DDD PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,754
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357753}'
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”ž๐Ÿ”ฅ Continuer la lecture โžคโžค โ€œAre you thinking about my brother again?โ€ New Alpha Jasperโ€™s voice cut through the stillness of the room, dragging me from the edge of sleep. The sight of mate made my heart race, a mix of fear and longing. His tone was playful, but the tension in his posture betrayed his anger. His brother, Elias, was the rightful heir to the pack, he had been my boyfriend until his death. He was a kind-hearted soul without a wolf, and that made him easy prey for Jasper, who seized power after their fatherโ€™s sudden demise. In addition to the alpha position, he took more than just power from Elias. Fate is a cruel mistress. After he kicked Elias out of the pack and cut ties with me, I found out that Jasper was my mate. Now, on the anniversary of that tragic day, the weight of my memories was almost too much to bear. Now, I canโ€™t control myself. I had to speak out. I rolled over to face him, my heart sinking at the sight of his piercing green eyes, dark with suspicion. โ€œWhat if I was? I do miss him.โ€ I asked flippantly. Jasperโ€™s jaw tightened. His playful demeanor shifted instantly. He crossed the room in a few powerful strides and stood at the edge of my bed. His presence was overwhelming, and I felt a familiar, unwelcome heat rising within me. โ€œIris,โ€ he growled. โ€œYou should know better.โ€ โ€œElias was better than you in every way,โ€ I snapped, unable to keep the bitterness out of my voice. โ€œEven without his wolf, he was more of a leader than you could ever be.โ€ Jasperโ€™s eyes flashed with fury, and in an instant, his hand was around my neck, his knee forcing my legs apart. He leaned in close, his breath hot on my neck. โ€œWatch your tongue, my dear mate. You are speaking to your Alpha. Your little lover is long gone, and donโ€™t you ever forget that.โ€ My pulse quickened, a confusing blend of fear, anger, and want. โ€œYou will always be a pathetic nobody,โ€ I spat. โ€œWith or without him.โ€ Jasperโ€™s face darkened with rage, but he controlled himself, a dangerous smile surfaced. โ€œElias is gone,โ€ he whispered, his breath tickling my ear. Suddenly he crushed his mouth against mine, his kiss so powerful and insistent I tasted my own blood. Despite myself, my body responded. The bond between us was undeniable, a cruel joke played by the moon goddess. His movements set my skin aflame, and I hated myself for wanting him. This man had taken everything from me, and yet here I was, craving him, needing him. Suddenly, my back hit the bed, familiar breathing tickles my neck. My anger warred with the fire he ignited in me, and I couldnโ€™t resist giving in to him. His hands cover me, possessive and demanding. I couldnโ€™t stop the sounds that escaped. Jasper smiled when he heard it. โ€œYou canโ€™t deny what we are to each other,โ€ he whispered, his voice rough with need. โ€œNo matter how much you want to hate me.โ€ โ€œI do hate you,โ€ I managed to say, though the breathlessness in my voice betrayed me. He chuckled darkly. โ€œHate me all you want, Iris,โ€ he said sensually. โ€œIt wonโ€™t change a thing.โ€ But I couldnโ€™t escape the memories of Elias. He had such gentle hands, such kind eyes. He loved me softly without all the violence and domination that Jasper brought. Eliasโ€™s hands had always moved over me with reverence, his fingers trailing lightly over my skin as if I were something precious. He adored me, and I worshiped him. His kisses had been tender, each one a silent vow of love and devotion. Jasper was different. He was possessive, demanding. He claimed me with rough, urgent hands that left bruises in their wake. His face crashed against mine with a hunger that bordered on violence, leaving no room for softness or tenderness. His teeth grazed my skin, leaving marks to show the world that I was his and his alone. I tried to hold on to the memories of Elias, to the way he had made me feel cherished and loved. I tried, but I failed. They slipped away with each brutal movement, every bruising kiss. Guilt twisted in my gut; a sharp, bitter ache that mingled with the physical pleasure Jasper gave me. Tears of anguish slipped down my cheeks, unnoticed by Jasper in his enjoyment. His hands gripped me tightly, his fingers digging passively into my flesh as he moved. The bed creaked under our combined weight, the sound a harsh counterpoint to the soft sounds that escaped me. Jasperโ€™s eyes were dark with possessiveness, his face twisted in a mixture of triumph and desire as he watched me beneath him. โ€œLook at you,โ€ he breathed, โ€œyou canโ€™t get enough, can you?โ€ I wanted to deny it, to scream that he was wrong, but the words caught in my throat. My body betrayed me, responding to his words even as my heart cried out for Elias. His movement became more frenzied, that left me gasping. โ€œThatโ€™s it,โ€ he growled. โ€œYouโ€™re mine, Iris. Donโ€™t you ever forget that.โ€ His pace quickened, his breath growing ragged. My nails dug into his shoulders, leaving red marks in his skin as I clung desperately to him. The room seemed to spin, my world narrowing to the brutal, unrelenting rhythm of him against me. The pleasure washing over me in a wave that left me trembling. For a moment, we lay there, our bodies entwined, the only sound was our labored breathing. Jasperโ€™s weight pressed down on me, grounding me in the present even as my mind drifted to the past. When he finally rolled off me, I turned away, curling into a ball. The dull throb matched the pain in my heart. Jasperโ€™s hand brushed my hair back from my face, his touch surprisingly gentle. โ€œIris,โ€ he said softly, but I didnโ€™t respond. I couldnโ€™t. The word lodged in my throat, a tangled knot of sorrow and longing. He didnโ€™t finish his sentence, getting up from the bed and dressing quickly. I watched him silently. He walked to the door before turning around. โ€œOh, by the way,โ€ he said casually, as if discussing the weather, โ€œI plan on rejecting you on Friday. Just a heads up.โ€ The words hung in the air, sharp as a blade. Chapter 2 Future Jasperโ€™s words stung, but I was used to his cruelty. His announcement shouldnโ€™t have been a surprise. He loved to taunt me. And the only reason he hadnโ€™t rejected me sooner was that I served as his useful prop, showcasing his supposed kindness and benevolence as the new Alpha. Rejecting me, his mate, wouldnโ€™t have looked good as an new alpha to the pack, although I was the girlfriend of the former rightful heir. But now his reign was secure. And he could do whatever he wanted. I should have felt triumphant, knowing that soon I would be free from his oppressive grasp, but the reality was far more complicated. I lay on my bed, staring at the ceiling. My mind scolded itself for being so overwhelmed with emotions. I shouldnโ€™t feel as shocked and betrayed as I did. I shouldnโ€™t feel anything at all. He took my parents and Elias. I should hate him. I really shouldnโ€™t have been surprised he had decided to reject me now. I should have known that was what he wanted. Behind the flirting and the occupying, he didnโ€™t want me. There was someone else. And I knew that. As if summoned by my thoughts, Naomi burst into my room, her eyes blazing with jealousy and rage. I hurried to cover myself, using the blankets on the bed, but she was too angry to notice or care. She stood by my bed, towering over me as if trying to assert her dominance, but she only succeeded in looking like an angry cat. โ€œHe was here again, wasnโ€™t he?โ€ she demanded, her voice sharp. I sighed, too caught up in my emotions to give her any kind of reaction. โ€œHe is the Alpha,โ€ I said, keeping my voice calm and even. โ€œHe comes and goes as he pleases.โ€ Naomi did not like that answer. Her hand struck my face with a sharp crack, the force of it turning my head to the side. I felt the familiar sting and the burn of tears that I refused to shed. Naomi crossed her arms, her eyes alight with hatred. But still, I did not have the energy to react. โ€œYou think you can win his heart with your body?โ€ She shouted, her voice echoing in my ears. โ€œHe is mine. He will always be mine. You are a toy! He will be bored of you soon enough!โ€ She never forgave me for being Jasperโ€™s mate. Even though it was nobodyโ€™s fault. We used to be best friends, growing up together as the daughters of the pack Beta and Gamma. I met her eyes. Even after all this, I didnโ€™t see her as anything but a hurt friend. I couldnโ€™t bring myself to hate her in return. I missed her. She was fierce, but kind. We used to be sisters in all but blood. We had even dreamed of mending the rift between Jasper and Elias as their better halves. But everything changed after my 20th birthday when the bond between Jasper and me was revealed. I hadnโ€™t meant to hurt her. Not after everything she did for me. She saved me from banishment after Jasper usurped the throne. Her father had helped Jasper, but my parents had died protecting Elias. She was there for me when I cried for them. But after my birthdayโ€ฆ her kindness turned to cold hatred. The sisterhood we once shared was shattered. And I was alone. Still, I couldnโ€™t hate her. I couldnโ€™t even be angry. I could only take whatever abuse she lay down. I felt I owed her that much. The sound of approaching footsteps broke through my thoughts, and I looked up sharply. Jasper entered the room, his presence overwhelming. Naomi immediately threw herself to the floor, crying out as if I had attacked her. โ€œShe pushed me for no reason!โ€ Naomi cried, the fake tears already dripping down her cheeks. Her voice was filled with fake innocence, and her eyes were wide and tearful. In an instant, Jasper was across the room. He picked Naomi up from the floor, cradling her in his arms. His expression hardened as he checked her for injuries, and he turned to look at me with cold disdain. He could have shouted at me. He could have yelled or scolded me for the supposed offense. But he didnโ€™t. He knew that wouldnโ€™t hurt me. So he did something much worse. โ€œThere is something I forgot to tell you about the rejection,โ€ he said, his voice low and icy. โ€œNaomiโ€™s coronation as Luna will be the same day. You will serve as her omega maid in the coronation after the rejection.โ€ He looked down at Naomi with a sickeningly loving gaze, brushing a wisp of hair from her face. โ€œThen you can punish her whenever you want, my dear,โ€ he whispered loud enough for me to hear. He kissed her softly. It looked so different from how he kissed me. It looked so loving. He knew what he was doing. He knew the pain I was going to experience. I couldnโ€™t even process it. All I could think about was how much he looked like Elias. The love in Jasperโ€™s eyes as he looked at Naomi shook me. He looked so much like the gentle and passionate Elias. I thought about how Elias had looked at me the same way. Jasper had taken that from me. Naomiโ€™s eyes gleamed with triumph as she nestled into Jasperโ€™s arms. He walked out without another word or glance in my direction, but Naomi peered over his shoulder at me with an ominous expression. I let myself fall into the bed, trembling. Only when the door was closed did I allow myself to fall apart. Jasper had officially taken everything from me. My parents were gone. My love was gone by his hand. My future was in ruins. My innocence was destroyed. And now, I was to be reduced to a servant, humiliated in front of the pack I once belonged to. I would be no better than a slave on a leash. The rejection would strip away the last remnants of my connection to Elias, severing the bond that had been my only solace. And the thought of serving Naomi, being at her spiteful mercy, was almost too much to bear. But I would bear it. I would endure. I had to. I had no choice. Chapter 3 Mates The next day, the sun was beginning to rise as I stood in Naomiโ€™s lavishly decorated room. Golden rays filtered through the sheer curtains, casting a warm glow on the ornate furniture and the array of dresses sprawled across the bed. I was helping Naomi with the dress she was going to wear in her coronation ceremony. The fabric was soft and luxurious, a deep shade of emerald that complemented her striking features. As Naomi slipped into the dress, she admired her figure in the mirror, her eyes gleaming with pride and anticipation. She turned to get a better look, her smile widening. While she admired herself, my mind couldnโ€™t help but slip to the past. Memories of our childhood together, of the times we were inseparable, flooded my thoughts. The mischievous adventures, the laughter, and the bond we once shared felt like a lifetime ago. โ€œHey! Where is your head at? Your Luna needs some help here!โ€ Naomiโ€™s voice snapped me back to the present. She looked at me petulantly, her arms crossed, the smile replaced by a slight frown. โ€œSorry,โ€ I mumbled, stepping forward to help her with the intricate details of her dress. As I adjusted the delicate lace around her shoulders and fastened the tiny buttons, I could feel the old closeness resurfacing. Despite everything, the connection we had was undeniable. While helping with her crown, I canโ€™t help feeling close to her again. The crown was heavy, encrusted with jewels that sparkled in the morning light. It symbolized power, authority, and a future that Naomi was eagerly stepping into. I placed it gently on her head, making sure it was perfectly aligned. โ€œDo you remember when we were kids?โ€ I asked softly, hoping to reach some part of the Naomi I once knew. She glanced at me; her face expressionless. โ€œI do,โ€ she replied. โ€œWe were quite the troublemakers.โ€ I nodded, encouraged by her words. โ€œWe had fun back then,โ€ I said. โ€œEverything was simpler.โ€ Naomiโ€™s face hardened and she snapped, โ€œThose days are gone, Iris. Iโ€™ve grown up. I had to.โ€ โ€œI know,โ€ I whispered. Then, feeling brave, I added, โ€œBut I miss the girl you used to be. That girl laughed and cared about others.โ€ Naomi whirled around to face me fully, her eyes cold and unyielding. โ€œThat girl was weak. She didnโ€™t understand what it takes to lead, to survive.โ€ โ€œIs that why you hate me?โ€ I asked, the question slipping out before I could stop it. Naomiโ€™s eyes flashed with anger. โ€œHate you? You took everything from me, Iris. Jasper was supposed to be mine, and you stole him.โ€ I shook my head, tears welling up. โ€œI didnโ€™t steal him. I wasnโ€™t something I had control over. You know that.โ€ โ€œControl?โ€ Naomi spat. โ€œThatโ€™s what it is all about. And now, I have it. I have the power to make my own choices. And as for you, Iris, donโ€™t think for a second that Iโ€™ve forgotten what you did. I will enjoy watching you suffer. Consider it payback for all those years I lived in your shadow.โ€ The venom in her words struck me like a blow. I had known Naomi was angry, bitter even, but this level of hatred was beyond what I had imagined. I looked into her eyes, searching for any hint of the friend I once knew, but all I saw was a stranger. โ€œI donโ€™t want to do this,โ€ I said weakly. โ€œI just want my friend back.โ€ She laughed, a cold, mirthless sound. โ€œYour friend?โ€ She asked, as if the words were strange to her. โ€œThat girl is gone, Iris. And what you see now is what I have become, what I had to become. You can either accept it or suffer the consequences.โ€ I couldnโ€™t leave it there. I had to ask one last question. โ€œYou never told me, who is your mate?โ€ Naomiโ€™s eyes flickered with an emotion I couldnโ€™t quite place. She was a few months younger than me, so when she got her wolf, I was already Jasperโ€™s mate. โ€œHe is gone,โ€ Naomi said. She looked at me in the mirror with a dangerous smirk. I blinked, trying to process her words. โ€œGone?โ€ I asked. โ€œWhat do you mean?โ€ โ€œI asked Jasper to get rid of him as soon as I found out who he was,โ€ she said nonchalantly, examining her nails. โ€œHe is not my mate. He is only an obstacle standing between me and my true happiness.โ€ I was shocked. The weight of her words settled heavily on me. โ€œNaomi, how could you?โ€ I asked, shaking my head in disbelief. She shrugged, her eyes cold and detached. โ€œHe was nothing to me,โ€ she explained, โ€œJust a name, a face. My destiny is far greater than being tied to someone who would hold me back.โ€ I couldnโ€™t handle it anymore. A wave of nausea hit me, and I started to dry-heave. The room spun around me, and I grasped the edge of the vanity to steady myself. Naomiโ€™s face turned white and then red with anger as I covered my mouth, gagging up spit. She stepped closer, her voice low and threatening. โ€œDonโ€™t play any games, Iris. You know even if you are bearing Jasperโ€™s child, it wonโ€™t change a thing. Besides, I wonโ€™t let it happen. Chapter 4 The Rejection Today is the coronation day of Naomi, and I was waiting in my room for Jasper to come and reject me. My heart pounded and it was getting harder and harder to breath. I paced back and forth, unable to stand still. My bedroom, usually a place of comfort, felt like a prison today. I could hear the sounds of bustling activity, preparations for Naomiโ€™s big day underway. The grandeur of the occasion was lost on me, overshadowed by the impending rejection. โ€œIt is for the best,โ€ I said to my wolf, Molly. โ€œMy life will be more livable after the rejection,โ€ I said, trying to convince myself of the truth of my words. โ€œNaomiโ€™s resentment is only misguided. I can try and get her to trust me again after. At least I would have her back. And if I am to work as her servant, making amends would make my life easier in that regard.โ€ My wolf whimpered, her sadness mirroring my own. โ€œI know, Molly,โ€ I said, sitting on the edge of my bed. โ€œItโ€™s justโ€ฆ this bond with Jasper has become too heavy a burden to bear. Maybeโ€ฆ maybe it is better this way.โ€ Just then, the door creaked open, and Jasper walked into the room. Jasper was dressed impeccably, his black suit highlighting his strong, commanding presence. His eyes, however, were void of the warmth they once held for me. They were cold, detached, a stark reminder of the gulf that had grown between us. โ€œLetโ€™s just get it over with,โ€ he said, his voice devoid of any emotion. The words cut through me. After all of this, I wasnโ€™t even worth a few minutes of his time. I was just something to cross off his checklist. Even though I was in pain, I forced myself to remain stoic. โ€œSure,โ€ I answered, matching his tone. My voice was flat, empty, reflecting the hollowness I felt inside. But then, something in Jasperโ€™s expression changed. His eyes softened, and a hint of a smirk played at the corners of his mouth. โ€œYou know, if you beg nicely, I can put you in a cute little houseโ€ฆโ€ The suggestion was both insulting and infuriating. I squared my shoulders, meeting his gaze head-on. โ€œNo need,โ€ I said quickly. โ€œI am fine being Naomiโ€™s maid.โ€ His smirk disappeared, replaced by a look of irritation. โ€œYou despite me, donโ€™t you?โ€ he said, pulling off his perfectly knotted tie with a sharp, frustrated movement. I didnโ€™t answer, my silence speaking volumes. The truth was, I didnโ€™t despite him. Even now, I still couldnโ€™t. I despised the situation, and the circumstances that had led us here. But before I could speak, he closed the distance between us, his hands gripping my hands firmly. His grip was firm, almost bruising, as he pulled my hands over my head. The intensity in his eyes both terrifying and magnetic. His forceful and demanding kiss left no room for hesitation. The kiss was the culmination of our pent-up anger and frustration, a desperate attempt to reclaim something that had long been lost. His hands swimming, and I responded by tangling my hands in his hair, pulling him closer. His suit jacket was the first to go, hitting the floor with a soft thud. My hands moved to the buttons of his shirt, fumbling in my haste. One by one, they gave way, revealing him slowly. His eyes darkened with desire as he took in the sight of me. For a brief moment, the anger seemed to melt away, replaced by a raw, unfiltered hunger. He traveled lower, kissing, and I shivered in anticipation. I was completely vulnerable now at his mercy. But I wanted this, I needed it more than I could express. The sensations were overwhelming. โ€œJasper,โ€ I gasp, tugging at his hair. He pulled back, his eyes meeting mine with a predatory gleam. We moved in perfect sync, a dance of passion and desperation. I felt the pressure building, a tight coil in me ready to snap. Jasperโ€™s movements became erratic, his breath coming in harsh pants. The wave crashed over me, leaving me breathless and trembling. Jasper collapsed beside me as he caught his breath. I lay there, staring at the ceiling. For a brief moment, everything else faded away. I thought of Elias. Here, about to be rejected, desperately needing Jasperโ€ฆ I thought of Elias. Jasper shot out of the bed without warning, looking at me with anger and maybe a little hurt in his eyes. โ€œIโ€™m glad that I am going to be done with you and this stupid betrayal pain,โ€ he spat, his voice laced with bitterness. The realization hit me. Now I knew why he never failed to show up at the worst of times. โ€œDonโ€™t.โ€ He cuts me off when I try to say something. He stopped me from saying anything further, his hands raised in a silent plea. The rejection ceremony began, the ancient words of separation flowing out of him. I spoke in a shaky voice but said them as well. The breaking of the mate bond was excruciating. It felt like a part of my soul was being ripped away. The pain was so intense, so overwhelming, that I passed out. As consciousness slipped away, I felt a warm liquid on my legs. Panic surged through me, but I was too weak to move. My last thought before darkness claimed me was a single, horrifying realization. It was blood. I have just begun to feel a subtle vitality in my body few days ago. Now this vitality has turned into deathly silence. Could it be... Chapter 5 The Coronation I woke up to someone rocking me violently. The world around me was a blur, and my head throbbed with pain. โ€œWake up! The coronation is about to start! Naomi is waiting for you!โ€ The voice was urgent, insistent, pulling me out of the darkness. My vision slowly cleared, and I recognized one of Naomiโ€™s attendants, her face pinched with annoyance. When she left, I struggled to sit up, aching from the aftermath of the rejection. I glanced down and found blood on my legs, a stark reminder of what happened. My heart ached, not just from the physical pain but from the realization of what I had lost. My wolf, Molly, was quieter than usual, her sadness mirroring my own. โ€œWe could have had a lovely little puppy.โ€ I heard her painful whispering. The bond with Jasper, once a source of strength and joy, had been brutally severed, leaving us both wounded. I took a deep breath, trying to steady myself. I forced myself to freshen up, washing away the traces of blood and tears. The reflection in the mirror showed a pale, haunted face, but there was no time to dwell on it. Naomi needed me. Despite everything, I still had to fulfill my duties. I dressed quickly and made my way to Naomiโ€™s room. Naomi looked at me with worry as I entered the room, her eyes briefly softening. But then she quickly masked it with condescending pity. โ€œWell, well, well. I guess you took the rejection pretty hard there I see,โ€ she said, her voice dripping with false concern. I didnโ€™t say anything, my silence a shield against her taunts. The pain was too fresh, too raw to respond. The coronation of the new Lune in our pack was a monumental event, attracting every powerful Alpha on the continent along with their Lunas. The grand hall was filled with people, the air buzzing with anticipation. Even the recently reappeared Lycan King had answered the invitation, his presence adding to the gravity of the occasion. The invitation had suggested that the new Luna was going to be me, the new Alphaโ€™s mate and the daughter of the old Beta. So people were shocked when Jasper got up to make his announcement. He radiated authority, the perfect image of an Alpha ready to lead. His dark eyes scanned the room, momentarily resting on me, and I felt a pang of loss. The crowd fell silent as the air filled with expectation. โ€œThe Great Pack,โ€ Jasper began, addressing them as one. โ€œThank you for coming to this occasion. Today, we mark the beginning of a new era.โ€ He paused, allowing his words to sink in. There was a murmur of excitement from the crowd, their eyes fixed on him. Jasper had always been a compelling speaker, able to command attention with ease. โ€œAs you all know,โ€ he continued, โ€œthe position of Luna is one of great importance. It is a role that requires not only strength and wisdom but also the unwavering support of the Alpha.โ€ He took a breath, his gaze hardening as he said, โ€œBut before I name my new luna, I must inform you that I have rejected my mate.โ€ Gasps and murmurs of disbelief rippled through the crowd. My heart pounded, each word a dagger twisting deeper. I stood there, frozen, as Jasperโ€™s declaration shattered the expectations of everyone present. โ€œThis new Luna will be my true love, Naomi,โ€ Jasper announced, his voice resolute. He gestured towards Naomi, who stood beside him with a victorious smile. โ€œShe is the daughter of a loyal supporter, someone who has stood by me and our pack through thick and thin. Her dedication and commitment are beyond question.โ€ Naomi stepped forward, her face glowing with pride and satisfaction. She basked in the attention as the guests looked on, their expressions ranging from surprise to confusion to pity. โ€œI assure you,โ€ Jasper continued. โ€œThis decision was made with the best interests of the pack in mind. Naomi and I will lead this pack with strength, wisdom, and a commitment to our shared future.โ€ The crowd remained silent, absorbing the news. I stared at the ground, standing silently beside the beaming Naomi, accepting the pitying glances of those around me. My heart was heavy, but I kept my head down, determined not to let them see my pain. Naomi beamed, basking in her newfound status. I remained silent as my emotions churned. Just then, Molly alerted me excitedly that my mate was in the crowd. My heart skipped a beat, fear gripping me at the thought that the rejection between me and Jasper hadnโ€™t worked. But Molly reassured me otherwise, her excitement infectious. I scanned the crowd, my eyes searching for the source of Mollyโ€™s enthusiasm. And then, my eyes locked with a man I thought I would never see again. Elias. LEARN_MORE https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12040&u Random Reading https://www.facebook.com/61560831098071/ 21 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 befant.com DCO https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12040&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/448653827_795098069497837_1012817998787489267_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=a7jv0AN1rOIQ7kNvgFluXW2&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AT8S_WeTI5LWrOreHf0R0Wd&oh=00_AYBbK5UUA8UOeO37tGp3t5jihQBjBNyj8XBpd3Gn6ED-Nw&oe=673061ED PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Random Reading 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,752
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”ฅ๐Ÿ”ฅClick to read the next chapter for free๐Ÿ‘‰ Two years of marriage, and I'd never set foot in my husband Elijah's office. Today was the first time I went to his company. After all this time, why was I suddenly entrusted to deliver these important documents? Could it be possible that theyโ€™re finally learning to accept me? Taking a deep breath, I gently placed my hand on my stomach. The emptiness from losing my baby lingered, even though it had been a long time since that accident. I still felt lost and fragile, wishing for solace that never came. I missed my husband's presence, longing for a comforting word or touch. But he and his family remained distant and uninvolved, leaving me to recover on my own. Now, I was about to step into Elijahโ€™s world โ€” his beloved company. My heart skipped a beat as I entered Elijah's large, elegant office. The room was tastefully decorated, with rich mahogany furniture and a large sign that said Sinclair Realty Group. But what made me stop in my tracks was the sight of my husband huddled with an attractive blonde over some papers. Their shoulders were touching, their cheeks almost brushing against each other. What is going on? I thought in alarm. Suddenly, the woman whispered something in Elijahโ€™s ear while she gently laid her perfectly manicured hands on his arm. My heart jumped. I heard a loud thud on the floor and realized Iโ€™d dropped the folder I was holding. They both looked up, startled. And thatโ€™s when my gaze locked with that of the woman. I felt a shudder creeping through my skin. Serena Foster! She used to be a classmate of ours at Fairview University. She also happened to be Elijahโ€™s ex-girlfriend. The realization hit me like a ton of bricks. So this is why my evil mother-in-law asked me to deliver this document! Morgana had probably known that Serena was here now. My husband rose from his chair, abruptly pulling away from Serena who was throwing me daggers with her eyes. โ€œYou remember Serena, right? She works here now.โ€ I nodded, my heart leaping into my throat and my thoughts raging in a storm. Theyโ€™re just colleagues, nothing else, I thought, but not with full conviction. Elijah wouldnโ€™t cheat on me, would he? All this time, Iโ€™d remained hopeful that he could still fall in love with me. But now, with Serena in the picture, time might just be running out for us. โ€œSo why are you here?โ€ Elijah asked, a frown creasing his brow. โ€œYour mom asked me to deliver this,โ€ I explained, hastily picking up the folder and handing it to him. Then narrowing my eyes at Serena, I waited for him to explain why they were working closely, or to at least introduce me as his wife. But much to my dismay, he didnโ€™t. It felt as though my heart was being squeezed tightly, as it dawned on me that heโ€™d never really introduced me to anyone as his wife. Ever. โ€œSophia, you look shaken up. Didnโ€™t you know Elijah hired me to work here?โ€ Her voice dripped with sarcasm. โ€œApparently, we make a great team. Funny, I donโ€™t recall seeing you here before.โ€ She was purposely rubbing it in my face, and I wanted to slap that smile away from her face. She then added, โ€œOh, right, you donโ€™t know anything about business. You might just mess things up.โ€ โ€œI take care of our home,โ€ I said bitterly, looking down on the floor for a bit. I felt belittled, and my husband couldnโ€™t even defend me. Serena looked at me with disbelief and laughed. Just then, Elijah said, โ€œNext time, Sophia, just contact me and Iโ€™ll have my assistant come over.โ€ "Fine," I murmured, my voice barely audible, wishing the ground would swallow me up. The weight of hurt and embarrassment pressed down on me, crushing my spirit. My heart thudded as I blinked back tears. He doesn't want me here. Suddenly, Elijahโ€™s secretary came in. โ€œAlice, please prepare coffee for the ladies,โ€ he instructed. โ€œJust black for Serena. No sugar.โ€ Serenaโ€™s eyes lit up. โ€œHey, you remembered!โ€ she exclaimed, obviously delighted. Elijah nodded at her. โ€œOf course.โ€ I watched the exchange with a sinking feeling in my heart. Serena gave me a smug look as if she was reveling in some secret victory. I couldnโ€™t help but feel more depressed. Here was my husband, effortlessly remembering Serena's coffee preferences, yet he couldn't recall something as simple as my allergy to caffeine. โ€œJoin us, Sophia,โ€ Serena invited with a devilish grin. โ€œJust like how we used to hang out together in college.โ€ I struggled to contain my emotions, not wanting to break down in front of them. โ€œI have to go,โ€ I managed to say, my voice slightly cracking. โ€œIโ€™ll see you at home.โ€ Elijahโ€™s expression remained unchanged, and my heart felt heavy with the realization of how little I meant to him. The way he treated me had only gotten worse after losing my baby. What did you expect? a small voice hissed in my head. He only married you because he got you to have a baby. Youโ€™re the one who keeps hoping heโ€™ll eventually fall for you. As his assistant Connor Hayes drove me home, I thought about how my husbandโ€™s mother Morgana had begun ignoring me after I lost the baby. Then one day, she started talking to me again, only to treat me like a housemaid. I fought back tears as the heaviness in my heart escalated. My marriage was falling apart so fast that I couldnโ€™t seem to catch up. When we pulled up the spacious driveway of the Sinclair mansion, a feeling of dread and loneliness engulfed me. Iโ€™m back in this prison. Trapped. Helpless. I want to escape this prison! I screamed in my head, glad that Morgana was nowhere to be found. Yet. Running to my room and throwing myself on my bed, sobs wracked my body. And as I cried my eyes out, I felt something with my hand that made me sit up. A small portion of a brown envelope was peeking from under the pillow. My heart tightened, and more tears filled my eyes. I knew exactly what it contained โ€” the papers Iโ€™d prepared before. I pulled them out and stared at the title that blurred before my teary eyes. It read: Divorce Agreement. CHAPTER 2 The divorce agreement was written after I accidentally lost my baby. During that time, I couldnโ€™t even look at Elijahโ€™s face without thinking about our baby. The pain was unbearable, so I believed divorce was my salvation. Looking back, preparing the divorce agreement was not a mistake, now that leaving was my only option. My hands shook as I held the papers in my hand. I could hear Morganaโ€™s voice outside. โ€œSophia!โ€ she called in a sharp tone. She probably heard me come in and was now wondering where I was. Quickly, I hid the divorce agreement and washed my face in the bathroom. Thatโ€™s when the door swung open. I dried my face with a towel and looked at my mother-in-law. She responded with a cold gaze. She immediately instructed me to do the housework, her tone full of disdain. As I began my chores, she stood there taunting me. โ€œElijah told me not to ask you to deliver things in the future,โ€ she said with a scoff. โ€œYou canโ€™t even be relied on for such a simple task.โ€ Her words cut deep. โ€œWhen you first came to our house carrying a baby in your belly, it was okay that you couldn't do anything,โ€ she continued. โ€œThen you had lost your baby and you had to spend months recovering and regaining your health. Now you can't even deliver a document, so what's the meaning for Elijah of having you as a wife?" Her words were like daggers, each one piercing my heart. And then, in a cruel twist, she added, โ€œMy son would be better off with Serena. She's prettier, smarter, and she even managed to land a job at his company! Unlike you... You can't even perform simple housework that well.โ€ Sure enough, she already knew that Serena worked at Elijah's company. She asked me to deliver the papers today just to make a fool of me. The room felt suffocating, the burden of her words pressing down on me. I felt utterly alone, realizing that no one had ever been on my side. I clenched my fists, struggling against the wave of tears threatening to spill. Sweeping the floor became a mechanical task, a facade to hide my turmoil. The repeated humiliations and frustrations drained me of the energy to fight back or explain myself yet again. I donโ€™t deserve this, I thought sourly. Itโ€™s time for me to escape, to save myself. With bitter tears streaming down my cheeks, I rushed to my room and grabbed the papers Iโ€™d hidden. Staring at me from the front page were the words: Divorce Agreement. Iโ€™ve had enough. Flashbacks of how Elijah and Morgana had been treating me filled my mind. Despite my efforts to be the dutiful wife and daughter-in-law, Iโ€™d always seemed invisible to them. Iโ€™ve been obedient, helpful, and hardworkingโ€ฆ But no one cares. Not even my own husband. Iโ€™m nothing to him. He doesnโ€™t love me and he never learned to. Thatโ€™s the most painful of all. My heart tightened. His indifference cut deeper than any overt cruelty could. And now, with Serena back in the picture, their attention gravitated toward her. I felt more isolated than ever. This is the last straw! I must get out of here, or Iโ€™ll lose my sanity! That evening, I hadnโ€™t realized Iโ€™d already fallen asleep when I heard the bedroom door open. Something made a loud, clattering noise. I quickly sat up and saw Elijah staggering toward me. He mumbled something about a dinner party as he plopped on the bed and started sliding his fingers down my bare arm. I hastily moved backward, giving him a look of disbelief. He was obviously drunk. If he wasnโ€™t, he would have just ignored me and gone straight to bed. โ€œHey, playing hard to get, arenโ€™t you?โ€ he said in a slurred manner, his bloodshot eyes becoming more intense. Then without warning, he leaned forward and kissed me on the lips. I didnโ€™t have time to react, though, because he suddenly started unbuttoning my oversized nightshirt. โ€œWhen did Serena start working at your company?โ€ I asked him coldly. He shrugged, but didnโ€™t stop what he was doing. โ€œNot sure. Probably recruited by HR.โ€ His lips traveled down and then his tongue followed. Finally, the last button on my sleep pajama surrendered. โ€œSerena is such a talented addition to our team,โ€ he remarked with admiration. As I reminisced about the scene I witnessed at the company, my husband and his ex-girlfriend Serena were closely nestled together, sharing laughter and conversation. But I couldn't muster the courage to confront her and ask her to keep her distance from him. Jealousy and pain gripped my chest. I couldnโ€™t believe he was saying all this while undressing me! I knew then that he still had feelings for her. โ€œYou know,โ€ he said, oblivious to my disappointment, โ€œshe's even outperforming many of the senior colleagues who've been with the company for years.โ€ Even as we locked eyes, there was something in his gazeโ€”a kind of infatuationโ€”that he never seemed to exhibit when it came to me. Heโ€™s probably picturing me as her! I thought with disgust. I was so disappointed in him, and didnโ€™t want him anywhere near me. But when I pulled away, he threw me an irritated look. โ€œWhatโ€™s wrong with you?โ€ he asked, taken aback that I was saying no to his advances unlike before. I didnโ€™t answer. He narrowed his eyes at me. โ€œYouโ€™ve been down in the dumps for months now! I thought youโ€™d snap out of it, but youโ€™ve only gotten worse. Itโ€™s depressing to even see you.โ€ I cringed at his words, the searing pain crushing my heart. He couldnโ€™t even see how my spirit was being shattered because of him. โ€œMaybe itโ€™s because of the baby we lostโ€ฆโ€ he mused. Sliding his fingers down the surface of my cheek and then my neck, he added in a drunken slur, โ€œWhy donโ€™t we just make another baby?โ€ I couldnโ€™t believe my ears. I knew that whenever he was drunk, he spoke without inhibitions. He was often brutally honest in this state. Hence, he meant every word and that only showed how much he didnโ€™t understand me or the problem we had in this marriage. My whole body was shaking as the misery and fury Iโ€™ve been keeping inside rose to the surface. He doesnโ€™t get it. Or maybe he just doesnโ€™t care. I was totally pissed off. And thatโ€™s when I blurted it out. โ€œI want to divorce you.โ€ CHAPTER 3 I could sense his mind reeling from the unexpected news. He opened his mouth as if to say something. I expected him to respond, to react, to ask questions. Anything at all! But he never said anything. My heart thumped hard as we gazed at one another โ€” strangers whoโ€™d been forced to live together. I had tried so hard to make this marriage work even after we had lost the baby. But it takes two to succeed at this, I realized. โ€œI want a divorce,โ€ I repeated, keeping my voice steady. โ€œIโ€™m serious.โ€ Slowly he nodded. โ€œYes, sure,โ€ he answered before getting up and disappearing into the bathroom. My heart felt like it was about to explode. I pulled my open shirt around me, desperately covering myself up, as I coiled into a fetal position with my head throbbing. A tear dropped down my cheek, and I quickly brushed it away. This is it. Iโ€™m going to be free. And yet somehow, I didnโ€™t feel that ecstatic. His reaction only confirmed my worst suspicions. Now I know the truth โ€” he never loved me at all. Heโ€™s not even upset about the divorce! I sighed. Itโ€™s time for me to move on. The next day, after eating breakfast on my own, I mustered up all my courage and called Elijah to the study. โ€œWe should sign this,โ€ I said without any emotion, showing him the divorce papers. He sat on the sofa across from me, looking at me quietly. His gaze always made me feel a little nervous, but today was different. I signed the papers and urged him to do the same. โ€œElijah, please,โ€ I whispered, making sure my voice wouldnโ€™t break. โ€œLet's end this.โ€ His face contorted in a horrible expression as he ruthlessly grabbed the agreement from me. But he didnโ€™t sign immediately. He took a long time going over each page while I waited impatiently. Then his phone suddenly rang. I saw it light up with Serenaโ€™s name, making my heart tighten. I canโ€™t believe this womanโ€™s timing! But Elijah only glanced at it before returning to reviewing the papers. Perhaps he didnโ€™t want to answer it because I was in the room with him. A myriad of emotions threatened to engulf me. I stood up and positioned myself in front of him with my arms crossed against my heart. โ€œWhy donโ€™t you just hurry up and sign those so you can get going? Someone might be waiting for you in the office.โ€ He glanced at me warily, then took out his pen and signed everything. With an angry grunt, he threw the papers down on the sofa and stormed out of the room. Watching him go, I was filled with overwhelming feelings โ€” relief, frustration, anger, sadness. โ€œIโ€™m finally free,โ€ I murmured to myself incredulously. While I was packing my bags in the bedroom, Morgana suddenly charged inside. In her usual bossy voice, she said, โ€œThe morningโ€™s almost over, Sophia! Go do the laundry now.โ€ With a sarcastic huff, I turned around to face her. โ€œSorry, but Elijah and I just signed a divorce agreement. I will no longer do any housework for you.โ€ Her face reddened in anger. I could almost see steam coming out of her ears as she crossed her arms on her pit and scolded me angrily. "You married into our family for two years, no children, and now you want a divorce," she spat out bitterly. I scoffed, not bothering to respond. It doesnโ€™t matter anymore. I can finally ignore her completely! But then, almost as quickly as her anger had surfaced, her mood changed. โ€œYou know what? It's actually quite nice,โ€ she said, her tone almost mocking. โ€œElijah can finally marry someone better, like Serina. Every single day that I see you hanging your head in despair, it just makes my blood boil. Anyone would make a better wife than you!โ€ Her words infuriated me. I wanted to slap away that haughty look on her face, but it would just be a waste of energy. Iโ€™m done here. Iโ€™m done with all this. Suddenly, memories flooded back of a time when Morgana had shown kindness, especially during my pregnancy with her grandchild. She had been caring and considerate. However, after I lost my baby, her demeanor changed drastically. She began treating me like a mere servant rather than a member of the family. I could never understand why she became so hostile all of a sudden. Sometimes I wondered if it had more to do with herself than with me. That afternoon, I went home to where I grew up. As I settled in, I felt relieved that at least I had a place I could call my own. โ€œLuckily I hadnโ€™t sold it,โ€ I muttered, looking around the living room and remembering my adoptive father. This house is the only connection I have left with him. Night swept in quickly. I was worn out and exhausted. Climbing onto my old bed, I was ready to relax when I received a message from my best friend Kayla. It showed a secretly taken photo of Elijah and Serena in a club, sitting intimately close and laughing together. A chill ran down my spine as I read the angry message from Kayla: That Elijah! You have no idea what I saw! Elijah was out partying and flirting with that Serena, which he never did with you! My heart sank, anger and sadness clouded my mind as I realized he was indeed getting back together with Serena and flaunting her around. Forcing back my tears, I told Kayla: Itโ€™s over between me and Elijah. We were divorced. CHAPTER 4 โ€œAaarrgghh! I so hate that guy for doing this to you!โ€ Kayla hissed. โ€œIf I had known heโ€™d treat you like that, I wouldnโ€™t have allowed you to even come near him during our grad celebration! And I wouldnโ€™t have kept pushing you to hook up with him, no matter how gorgeous he was!โ€ Being the daughter of Raven Mediaโ€™s renowned CEO, Kayla Davis always hung out with high society. She saw Elijah a lot at parties since they belonged to the same circle. We also all happened to attend Fairview University where Kayla and I had majored in Interior Design. Hence, she not only knew Elijah but Serena too. โ€œYou should have seen them at the party last night!โ€ she cried out, causing some people to give us a dirty look. Lowering her voice, she leaned forward with a repulsed look. โ€œThey didnโ€™t even care that I was there! They were justโ€ฆ Aaahhh! I really couldnโ€™t take it, so I went over there and gave them a piece of my mind. I told them they ought to be ashamed of themselves!โ€ โ€œOh, wow,โ€ I uttered in disbelief. โ€œBut itโ€™s over now, Kayla. Iโ€™m doing my best to move on.โ€ Kayla was still fuming. But then, she eventually smiled and leaned over to squeeze my hands. โ€œIโ€™m always here for you, Sophia. You know that.โ€ โ€œThanks so much. Iโ€™m really grateful to have someone who really cares about me,โ€ I responded with a fluttering heart. โ€œWell, youโ€™ve always had my back even in high school. So now itโ€™s my turn to return the favor.โ€ Kayla and I became best friends during our freshman year in high school. We came to know each other well when we first worked on an art project together. Weโ€™d hit it off at once, and the rest was history. โ€œAnyway, I can see that Elijah never loved you and he doesnโ€™t deserve you, Sophia,โ€ she went on. โ€œSo what are you planning now?โ€ โ€œWell, Iโ€™ve been giving it some thoughtโ€ฆโ€ I began, suddenly feeling excited for the future. โ€œA few weeks ago, I applied for this postgraduate program at Goldwell Institute of Art in Franceโ€”โ€ โ€œYou did not!โ€ she interrupted me, her lips turning up into a huge grin. Suddenly, she jumped up from her seat and gave me a hug. โ€œThis will surely be your big break!โ€ I laughed. โ€œI havenโ€™t been accepted yet, you know.โ€ โ€œOh, but you will be!โ€ Kaylaโ€™s enthusiasm was so contagious that I could already picture myself studying there, exploring France, and enjoying myself. But then, my mood suddenly changed again when I heard my phone ringing and saw Elijahโ€™s name popping up on the screen. I froze up. Kaylaโ€™s eyes narrowed when she saw it too. โ€œGo ahead and answer it. See what he has to say.โ€ As soon as I accepted the call, I heard Elijahโ€™s sharp tone of voice on the other end. โ€œYou filed for our divorce, and now your family wants cash from me?! Unbelievable!โ€ โ€œWait, what do you mean?โ€ โ€œYou know Iโ€™m busy in the office, then here comes your brother with another excuse for needing financial help! He had the nerve to barge into the conference room and disrupt our meeting!โ€ Elijah railed angrily. I felt mortified and helpless. โ€œIโ€™ll talk to Troy.โ€ โ€œGood. Make sure he doesnโ€™t come back again ever.โ€ Then he hung up. I was so shocked that I couldnโ€™t speak for a while. My family's constant demands for cash had reached a tipping point. No matter how many times I tried to set boundaries, they continued to use me and interrupt Elijah. It felt like I had no control over the situation, and it was greatly upsetting. โ€œSorry I have to go now, Kayla,โ€ I said, bravely deciding to act immediately. She nodded in understanding and we said goodbye. I immediately rushed to the house where my adoptive mother and brother had moved to after my adoptive father Tom Bennett passed away. Heโ€™d left me the original house where heโ€™d taken care of me like his real own child. But the rest of the inheritance had been taken by his wife and son. Theyโ€™d bought a bigger house and I never heard from them again. Not until they learned of my marrying a wealthy man in the famous Sinclair clan. Brenda was certainly not pleased to hear what I had to say. โ€œWhat did you say?! You divorced Elijah, the billionaire CEO of Sinclair Realty Group?!! Are you out of your mind?!!โ€ Behind her, my brother Troy looked as if he wanted to punch the wall. โ€œIt was never going to work out,โ€ I said, trying to maintain my composure. โ€œJust please stop bothering him. Weโ€™ve cut our ties. You canโ€™t ask for anything from him anymore.โ€ โ€œOh, man!โ€ Troy exclaimed with frustration. Two years ago, after I married Elijah, Brenda and Troy came back and pretended like we were a tight-knit family. At first, Elijah was kind and understanding of their needs. But when he noticed how abusive they had become, always asking for financial support, he became impatient and angry. One time, they even borrowed cash in my name and never paid it back. It had become one of the reasons why Morgana was so angry with me. โ€œDid you fight? Maybe you can still fix it!โ€ Brenda said, looking desperate. Troy scoffed. โ€œWhen I went to his office, I saw him talking to this beautiful, sexy blonde. Iโ€™m guessing thereโ€™s a third party involved! People who donโ€™t know better would think that woman is his wife!โ€ CHAPTER 5 My heart felt like it would explode any time now. โ€œIt doesnโ€™t matter,โ€ I eventually said to Troy. โ€œItโ€™s none of my business now. I donโ€™t care what he does with that woman or with whomever.โ€ Then staring hard at him and my foster mother, I said sharply, โ€œWeโ€™re definitely not getting back together, so the two of you should just stop going to him for anything! Just stop!โ€ โ€œButโ€ฆโ€ Brenda began to protest. I raised my hand to stop her. โ€œElijah and I are over. Besides, Iโ€™ll soon move to France and study there. And since you only contacted me again because of Elijahโ€™s wealth, then now you wonโ€™t have any more need for me, right?โ€ They were both shocked at my words because I had never spoken like that in the past. But it was time for me to step up and put myself first for once. โ€œAll thing that you swindled out of my ex-husbandโ€™s pocket, consider it as your payment for raising me,โ€ I went on in a steady voice. โ€œWe donโ€™t have to see or talk to each other ever again.โ€ On the way home, I began to feel a migraine coming. I closed my eyes and massaged my temples as I sat in the back seat of a cab. All of this dramaโ€™s taking a toll on me, I guess. But as I neared the house, I felt increasingly queasy and unwell. I realized my health hadnโ€™t fully recovered since the loss. โ€œCould you please take me to the hospital?โ€ I asked the driver, trying to keep my voice steady despite the rising nausea. He nodded and quickly changed course, navigating toward the nearest medical facility. The ride felt endless, each bump in the road exacerbating my discomfort. By the time we arrived, I could barely contain the churning in my stomach. I burst through the hospital doors, a wave of dizziness threatening to overwhelm me. My vision blurred, and I stumbled forward, nearly colliding with a figure in front of me. Before I could hit the ground, strong hands gripped my arms, steadying me. Gasping for breath, I looked up and found myself staring into the concerned eyes of a very handsome and familiar-looking man. โ€œAre you okay? You look like you're about to faint,โ€ he said, his brows furrowed with worry. With our eyes locked on each other, before I could even reply, a look of recognition crossed his features. โ€œOh, wait! Itโ€™s you. Sophia Bennett from Green Valley High, right?โ€ I was surprised, looking at him closely. His features reminded me of someone I knew a long way back. โ€œUh, Daniel?โ€ I eventually said, recalling his name. We had gone to the same high school, but he was a year older than me. โ€œYes, yes. Wait, let me bring you to our family doctor. You look really pale.โ€ I felt too sick to pretend I was fine, so I just let him lead me through the corridor and into one of the clinics. He quickly introduced me to the doctor whom he seemed to know well. As the doctor greeted me, concern etched across his face, I explained how I'd been feeling. He listened attentively, nodding as I spoke. After a brief discussion, he led me to an examination room, asking Daniel to wait outside. The examination was thorough, and I appreciated the doctor's calming demeanor. Afterward, he suggested some basic tests to determine the cause of my symptoms. โ€œHow are you feeling now?โ€ Daniel asked kindly once I sat down beside him in the waiting area. โ€œA little better, but still kinda dizzy,โ€ I answered honestly. โ€œThanks for the assistance, but itโ€™s okay if you have somewhere to be. Youโ€™ve already done too much for me.โ€ โ€œOh, itโ€™s okay,โ€ he said with a smile. โ€œUnless you donโ€™t want me here.โ€ โ€œItโ€™s nothing like that, of course!โ€ I quickly replied. โ€œThanks for accompanying me. It feels good to have someone to talk to while Iโ€™m here.โ€ โ€œWell, Iโ€™m all ears. People say Iโ€™m a good listener.โ€ I beamed at him, his presence a comforting anchor in the sterile hospital environment. Chuckling, I said, โ€œI donโ€™t really know you, Danielโ€ฆโ€ โ€œYou know my name. Thatโ€™s a start.โ€ His grin seemed to brighten up the surroundings, and I just felt immediately comfortable with him. I couldn't help but feel a sense of familiarity and trust wash over me. We hadn't been close in high school, but something about his calm demeanor and genuine concern made me want to open up. โ€œI rememberโ€ฆ Daniel Pierceโ€ฆโ€ I began, smiling. I could feel my headache and nausea diminishing. โ€œHigh school jock, but a bit geeky and always at the top of the class.โ€ He laughed. โ€œYouโ€™ve got a good memory, Sophia Bennett. I remember you too โ€” the smart, quiet, very talented artist whom all the boys noticed but never had the nerve to approach.โ€ I laughed too at his astonishing description of me. โ€œYouโ€™re joking!โ€ โ€œNo, itโ€™s trueโ€ฆ Really! Iโ€™m sure youโ€™ve managed to get yourself a very good-looking husband. Let me guess, a CEO?โ€ He was kidding, but hitting close to home made me frown as I remembered Elijah. โ€œGood-looking, yes. CEO, yes. But husband? Not anymore.โ€ โ€œOh.โ€ His expression changed immediately. โ€œIโ€™m sorry to hear that.โ€ โ€œYou know, it's been a rough few months,โ€ I began tentatively, twiddling my thumbs in my lap. โ€œI'm actually going through a divorce, and my family... they keep asking for cash from my ex-husband, which just complicates things even more.โ€ Daniel's expression shifted to one of empathy, and he nodded, encouraging me to continue. โ€œAnd then I lost my baby...It's been tough, physically and emotionally. I just feel like I'm carrying the weight of the world on my shoulders, you know?โ€ He nodded in understanding. โ€œIโ€™m so sorry to hear all that, Sophia. But you seem like a really strong woman. Iโ€™m sure you can get back on your feet in no time. Usually, it helps to be in a change of environment. Have you considered that?โ€ โ€œYeah, starting anew in a foreign land,โ€ I answered, thinking about my application in France. โ€œHmmโ€ฆ sounds like a pretty bold move," Daniel remarked, his eyes reflecting admiration and amusement at the same time. โ€œIt takes courage to make such a big change.โ€ I smiled weakly. โ€œActually, I've applied for graduate studies in France. It's something I've always wanted to do.โ€ Daniel's eyebrows shot up in surprise. โ€œReally? That's incredible! I recently got accepted at the Goldwell Business School in Parisโ€ฆโ€ My jaw dropped. โ€œWhat? Iโ€™m planning to go to the Goldwell Institute of Art!โ€ He looked at me with astonishment. โ€œWhat are the odds, huh? Looks like weโ€™ll be seeing more of each other. Those institutions share practically the same campus.โ€ I couldn't believe the coincidence, though I was still feeling down. โ€œThatโ€™s reallyโ€ฆ something else.โ€ โ€œSurely youโ€™ll get in. Where do you plan to stay in Paris?โ€ โ€œThe Latin Quarter, of course. Iโ€™m looking at an apartment there, since itโ€™s where most students live.โ€ Daniel chuckled. โ€œAnd it looks like weโ€™ll be neighbors too. I think we were meant to cross paths again right now, right here.โ€ He gave me a lopsided grin. โ€œWho knows? Maybe weโ€™re destined to explore France together! When you book your plane ticket, let me know. Letโ€™s fly together. I mean, if thatโ€™s alright with you?โ€ His offer warmed my heart, and for the first time in a long while, I felt a glimmer of hope. โ€œThank you, Danielโ€ฆโ€ Suddenly, I heard my name being called by the assistant, motioning for me to come back into the clinic. โ€œMiss Sophia Bennett?โ€ she informed me. โ€œYour test results are here.โ€ CHAPTER 6 Daniel followed me into the doctor's office, providing support. The doctor smiled warmly at us, his expression giving nothing away. โ€œWell, Sophia,โ€ he began, his tone measured, โ€œthe results are in. Congratulations to you both.โ€ I felt a rush of confusion and disbelief. โ€œYouโ€™re going to be parents. Congratulations!โ€ the doctor added. Iโ€™mโ€ฆ pregnant?! How could that be? My last baby had left me only months ago. Even I just signed divorce papers with Elijah, and now I'm carrying his child? The room spun around me as embarrassment flooded my cheeks. Probably because he was mistaken for the baby's father, Daniel looked surprised but did not contradict the doctor. โ€œOther than that, youโ€™re perfectly healthy, Sophia,โ€ the doctor assured me. He went on to discuss some things with Daniel, but I hardly heard them talking. My heart pounded crazily, and my mind felt fuzzy. Once again, I felt like I was caught up in a weird dream. None of it was real. Daniel was quiet as we left the hospital. I didnโ€™t know what to say either. โ€œLet me drive you home, Sophia,โ€ he offered once we were outside. His eyes were filled with concern for me. I was just too tired and confused to say no, so I simply nodded. He did not ask any questions, and I was glad. What am I going to do? I asked myself in silence while in the car, feeling the panic rising in my throat. This is the worst timing ever. Elijah and I just got divorced, and Iโ€™m supposed to have a whole new life ahead of me. Anxiety took over me. Everything was about to change again. If I have this baby, it wonโ€™t have a father, I thought bitterly. And how can I take care of it on my own while living in a different country where I donโ€™t have anyone to help me? My hand moved toward my tummy. There was no baby bump yet, but knowing that there was a little one growing inside gave me chills. Suddenly, I remembered how painful it had been to lose my baby before. This is a blessing, a second chance for me to become a mother. Would I want to risk losing another baby? Slowly I began to calm down. I took deep breaths until my head began to clear. This is a miracle, I told myself. I should be grateful. As I rubbed my belly, I spoke in my mind. Iโ€™m so sorry, baby. Itโ€™s just all too sudden. But I know that Iโ€™m going to take care of you and love you with all my heart. Days flew by, bringing a welcomed calm without Elijah, Brenda, and Troy in the picture. However, internally, I remained in turmoil. Then, the news I had been eagerly awaiting arrivedโ€”I had been accepted into my dream university to study art and design once more! Despite the uncertainty of juggling studies with a baby, I couldn't let this opportunity slip away. In just a weekโ€™s time, I found myself waving goodbye to Kayla at the airport. โ€œCall me when you get there!โ€ she said, her eyes gleaming with tears. It was the first time we would be apart for a long time, and we were like sisters. As I settled into my seat on the airplane, bound for Paris, excitement and nervousness mingled within me. The prospect of starting a new life in a different country threatened to overwhelm my senses. The plane began its ascent, lifting off the ground. I felt a wave of panic wash over me. Beside me, Daniel sensed my unease and reached over, gently squeezing my hand. โ€œEverything will be okay,โ€ he reassured me. โ€œI'm here. We'll do this together.โ€ His words were a comforting balm to my anxious soul, and I found great comfort in his presence. As we chatted throughout the plane ride, ate together, fell asleep, and then chatted some more, I began to relax and come to terms with the situation. I can do this, I thought with more confidence. Then touching my tummy, I silently whispered, Youโ€™re my lucky charm, my baby. By the time we landed safely, Daniel and I were like old buddies. I was truly grateful that he was with me. As the cab wound through Paris, iconic landmarks flashed pastโ€”the Eiffel Tower dominating the skyline, the majestic Louvre in the distance, and quaint streets bustling with cafes and shops. Despite my worries, the beauty of the city had me momentarily elated, filling me with a sense of excitement and wonder. Beside me, Daniel seemed entranced, his eyes wide with wonder. Soon, we were unloading my bags at my new apartment. It was semi-furnished, and I was immediately drawn to the light blue walls and the inviting white sofa. But my favorite part of all was the large window that gave me a fantastic view of the busy city street below. This was itโ€”the start of my new life in Paris. I turned to Daniel, who was looking around the apartment with a satisfied smile. โ€œLooks like you've got yourself a nice little place here,โ€ he remarked, glancing back at me. "Yeah, I think I'm going to like it here," I replied. Daniel chuckled. โ€œJust remember to take it easy, okay? You've had a long journey.โ€ I rolled my eyes. โ€œI'm fine, Daniel. I'm not going to keel over from exhaustion.โ€ He raised an eyebrow, and then grinned. โ€œI'm just saying, youโ€™ll be too heavy for me to carry if you collapse!โ€ I threw the throw pillow at him jokingly. โ€œOh, shut up.โ€ We both laughed. He added, โ€œYou need to get some beauty sleep, Sophia. I'm sure you'll want to look your best when you meet your new classmates.โ€ โ€œOh, so now you're concerned about my appearance?โ€ Daniel grinned. โ€œHey, a little rest never hurt anyone. And who knows, maybe you'll meet a cute French guy who'll sweep you off your feet.โ€ I playfully nudged him. โ€œI think I'll pass on that, thank you very much. I'm here to focus on my studies, not my love life.โ€ He appeared pleased with that statement. โ€œFair enough,โ€ he answered with a teasing smile. โ€œBut you never know what could happen. Paris is the city of love, after all.โ€ I felt a little flutter in my heart, wondering if I could learn to look at him as more than a friend. Perhaps it's more accurate to say he's akin to a brother rather than just a friend. The assistance he's provided far exceeds anything I've received from Elijah in years. Sighing, I went over to my bags. โ€œCome on, just help me unpack already so we can check out your apartment next.โ€ As we were unpacking, my phone rang. I figured it was Kayla so I asked Daniel to answer it, showing him that my hands were full at the moment. โ€œHello?โ€ I heard Daniel say. He put the call on speaker mode. โ€œWho the hell is this? Where's Sophia?โ€ a very familiar male voice demanded, his tone aggressive and impatient. My heart felt like it had just plummeted to the ground. I felt my whole body trembling when Daniel handed the phone to me. I didn't have to hold the phone to my ear to hear Elijah's furious growling, "Sophia, YOU CAN'T just walk away like this! Where the hell are you now?! Without my permission, you are not allowed to go anywh...." I pressed the button to end the call without hearing his entire words, calming my quivering heart with a big and deep breath. It's true that Elijah has never been very considerate or tender with me, but he hasn't really stepped on me rudely either. It's just that lately, he's been indifferent to me. Anyway, he'd never been as emotionally cranky as he was now. Did my leaving make him care? No, don't be silly, Sophia, he can be with Serena again now. He's free. How do you expect that he would care about you, a woman he had never loved? Daniel noticed my paradoxical anxiety. "Who is he?" Daniel inquired. But I could see in his eyes that he clearly knew the answer to that question. I sighed, "My husband. No, ex-husband." LEARN_MORE https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid= Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 thebvhwysgng.com IMAGE https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=12887&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/452924715_3327902127515032_1948312353889863924_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=107&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=y1NAfasHPuUQ7kNvgGwEwhG&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AT8S_WeTI5LWrOreHf0R0Wd&oh=00_AYAFhhddDwzj7lirWmpXoqk72AVYuc4mvYO-ax_Jn2Wyew&oe=67306C98 PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,753
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”ž๐Ÿ”ฅ Continuer la lecture โžคโžค โ€œAre you thinking about my brother again?โ€ New Alpha Jasperโ€™s voice cut through the stillness of the room, dragging me from the edge of sleep. The sight of mate made my heart race, a mix of fear and longing. His tone was playful, but the tension in his posture betrayed his anger. His brother, Elias, was the rightful heir to the pack, he had been my boyfriend until his death. He was a kind-hearted soul without a wolf, and that made him easy prey for Jasper, who seized power after their fatherโ€™s sudden demise. In addition to the alpha position, he took more than just power from Elias. Fate is a cruel mistress. After he kicked Elias out of the pack and cut ties with me, I found out that Jasper was my mate. Now, on the anniversary of that tragic day, the weight of my memories was almost too much to bear. Now, I canโ€™t control myself. I had to speak out. I rolled over to face him, my heart sinking at the sight of his piercing green eyes, dark with suspicion. โ€œWhat if I was? I do miss him.โ€ I asked flippantly. Jasperโ€™s jaw tightened. His playful demeanor shifted instantly. He crossed the room in a few powerful strides and stood at the edge of my bed. His presence was overwhelming, and I felt a familiar, unwelcome heat rising within me. โ€œIris,โ€ he growled. โ€œYou should know better.โ€ โ€œElias was better than you in every way,โ€ I snapped, unable to keep the bitterness out of my voice. โ€œEven without his wolf, he was more of a leader than you could ever be.โ€ Jasperโ€™s eyes flashed with fury, and in an instant, his hand was around my neck, his knee forcing my legs apart. He leaned in close, his breath hot on my neck. โ€œWatch your tongue, my dear mate. You are speaking to your Alpha. Your little lover is long gone, and donโ€™t you ever forget that.โ€ My pulse quickened, a confusing blend of fear, anger, and want. โ€œYou will always be a pathetic nobody,โ€ I spat. โ€œWith or without him.โ€ Jasperโ€™s face darkened with rage, but he controlled himself, a dangerous smile surfaced. โ€œElias is gone,โ€ he whispered, his breath tickling my ear. Suddenly he crushed his mouth against mine, his kiss so powerful and insistent I tasted my own blood. Despite myself, my body responded. The bond between us was undeniable, a cruel joke played by the moon goddess. His movements set my skin aflame, and I hated myself for wanting him. This man had taken everything from me, and yet here I was, craving him, needing him. Suddenly, my back hit the bed, familiar breathing tickles my neck. My anger warred with the fire he ignited in me, and I couldnโ€™t resist giving in to him. His hands cover me, possessive and demanding. I couldnโ€™t stop the sounds that escaped. Jasper smiled when he heard it. โ€œYou canโ€™t deny what we are to each other,โ€ he whispered, his voice rough with need. โ€œNo matter how much you want to hate me.โ€ โ€œI do hate you,โ€ I managed to say, though the breathlessness in my voice betrayed me. He chuckled darkly. โ€œHate me all you want, Iris,โ€ he said sensually. โ€œIt wonโ€™t change a thing.โ€ But I couldnโ€™t escape the memories of Elias. He had such gentle hands, such kind eyes. He loved me softly without all the violence and domination that Jasper brought. Eliasโ€™s hands had always moved over me with reverence, his fingers trailing lightly over my skin as if I were something precious. He adored me, and I worshiped him. His kisses had been tender, each one a silent vow of love and devotion. Jasper was different. He was possessive, demanding. He claimed me with rough, urgent hands that left bruises in their wake. His face crashed against mine with a hunger that bordered on violence, leaving no room for softness or tenderness. His teeth grazed my skin, leaving marks to show the world that I was his and his alone. I tried to hold on to the memories of Elias, to the way he had made me feel cherished and loved. I tried, but I failed. They slipped away with each brutal movement, every bruising kiss. Guilt twisted in my gut; a sharp, bitter ache that mingled with the physical pleasure Jasper gave me. Tears of anguish slipped down my cheeks, unnoticed by Jasper in his enjoyment. His hands gripped me tightly, his fingers digging passively into my flesh as he moved. The bed creaked under our combined weight, the sound a harsh counterpoint to the soft sounds that escaped me. Jasperโ€™s eyes were dark with possessiveness, his face twisted in a mixture of triumph and desire as he watched me beneath him. โ€œLook at you,โ€ he breathed, โ€œyou canโ€™t get enough, can you?โ€ I wanted to deny it, to scream that he was wrong, but the words caught in my throat. My body betrayed me, responding to his words even as my heart cried out for Elias. His movement became more frenzied, that left me gasping. โ€œThatโ€™s it,โ€ he growled. โ€œYouโ€™re mine, Iris. Donโ€™t you ever forget that.โ€ His pace quickened, his breath growing ragged. My nails dug into his shoulders, leaving red marks in his skin as I clung desperately to him. The room seemed to spin, my world narrowing to the brutal, unrelenting rhythm of him against me. The pleasure washing over me in a wave that left me trembling. For a moment, we lay there, our bodies entwined, the only sound was our labored breathing. Jasperโ€™s weight pressed down on me, grounding me in the present even as my mind drifted to the past. When he finally rolled off me, I turned away, curling into a ball. The dull throb matched the pain in my heart. Jasperโ€™s hand brushed my hair back from my face, his touch surprisingly gentle. โ€œIris,โ€ he said softly, but I didnโ€™t respond. I couldnโ€™t. The word lodged in my throat, a tangled knot of sorrow and longing. He didnโ€™t finish his sentence, getting up from the bed and dressing quickly. I watched him silently. He walked to the door before turning around. โ€œOh, by the way,โ€ he said casually, as if discussing the weather, โ€œI plan on rejecting you on Friday. Just a heads up.โ€ The words hung in the air, sharp as a blade. Chapter 2 Future Jasperโ€™s words stung, but I was used to his cruelty. His announcement shouldnโ€™t have been a surprise. He loved to taunt me. And the only reason he hadnโ€™t rejected me sooner was that I served as his useful prop, showcasing his supposed kindness and benevolence as the new Alpha. Rejecting me, his mate, wouldnโ€™t have looked good as an new alpha to the pack, although I was the girlfriend of the former rightful heir. But now his reign was secure. And he could do whatever he wanted. I should have felt triumphant, knowing that soon I would be free from his oppressive grasp, but the reality was far more complicated. I lay on my bed, staring at the ceiling. My mind scolded itself for being so overwhelmed with emotions. I shouldnโ€™t feel as shocked and betrayed as I did. I shouldnโ€™t feel anything at all. He took my parents and Elias. I should hate him. I really shouldnโ€™t have been surprised he had decided to reject me now. I should have known that was what he wanted. Behind the flirting and the occupying, he didnโ€™t want me. There was someone else. And I knew that. As if summoned by my thoughts, Naomi burst into my room, her eyes blazing with jealousy and rage. I hurried to cover myself, using the blankets on the bed, but she was too angry to notice or care. She stood by my bed, towering over me as if trying to assert her dominance, but she only succeeded in looking like an angry cat. โ€œHe was here again, wasnโ€™t he?โ€ she demanded, her voice sharp. I sighed, too caught up in my emotions to give her any kind of reaction. โ€œHe is the Alpha,โ€ I said, keeping my voice calm and even. โ€œHe comes and goes as he pleases.โ€ Naomi did not like that answer. Her hand struck my face with a sharp crack, the force of it turning my head to the side. I felt the familiar sting and the burn of tears that I refused to shed. Naomi crossed her arms, her eyes alight with hatred. But still, I did not have the energy to react. โ€œYou think you can win his heart with your body?โ€ She shouted, her voice echoing in my ears. โ€œHe is mine. He will always be mine. You are a toy! He will be bored of you soon enough!โ€ She never forgave me for being Jasperโ€™s mate. Even though it was nobodyโ€™s fault. We used to be best friends, growing up together as the daughters of the pack Beta and Gamma. I met her eyes. Even after all this, I didnโ€™t see her as anything but a hurt friend. I couldnโ€™t bring myself to hate her in return. I missed her. She was fierce, but kind. We used to be sisters in all but blood. We had even dreamed of mending the rift between Jasper and Elias as their better halves. But everything changed after my 20th birthday when the bond between Jasper and me was revealed. I hadnโ€™t meant to hurt her. Not after everything she did for me. She saved me from banishment after Jasper usurped the throne. Her father had helped Jasper, but my parents had died protecting Elias. She was there for me when I cried for them. But after my birthdayโ€ฆ her kindness turned to cold hatred. The sisterhood we once shared was shattered. And I was alone. Still, I couldnโ€™t hate her. I couldnโ€™t even be angry. I could only take whatever abuse she lay down. I felt I owed her that much. The sound of approaching footsteps broke through my thoughts, and I looked up sharply. Jasper entered the room, his presence overwhelming. Naomi immediately threw herself to the floor, crying out as if I had attacked her. โ€œShe pushed me for no reason!โ€ Naomi cried, the fake tears already dripping down her cheeks. Her voice was filled with fake innocence, and her eyes were wide and tearful. In an instant, Jasper was across the room. He picked Naomi up from the floor, cradling her in his arms. His expression hardened as he checked her for injuries, and he turned to look at me with cold disdain. He could have shouted at me. He could have yelled or scolded me for the supposed offense. But he didnโ€™t. He knew that wouldnโ€™t hurt me. So he did something much worse. โ€œThere is something I forgot to tell you about the rejection,โ€ he said, his voice low and icy. โ€œNaomiโ€™s coronation as Luna will be the same day. You will serve as her omega maid in the coronation after the rejection.โ€ He looked down at Naomi with a sickeningly loving gaze, brushing a wisp of hair from her face. โ€œThen you can punish her whenever you want, my dear,โ€ he whispered loud enough for me to hear. He kissed her softly. It looked so different from how he kissed me. It looked so loving. He knew what he was doing. He knew the pain I was going to experience. I couldnโ€™t even process it. All I could think about was how much he looked like Elias. The love in Jasperโ€™s eyes as he looked at Naomi shook me. He looked so much like the gentle and passionate Elias. I thought about how Elias had looked at me the same way. Jasper had taken that from me. Naomiโ€™s eyes gleamed with triumph as she nestled into Jasperโ€™s arms. He walked out without another word or glance in my direction, but Naomi peered over his shoulder at me with an ominous expression. I let myself fall into the bed, trembling. Only when the door was closed did I allow myself to fall apart. Jasper had officially taken everything from me. My parents were gone. My love was gone by his hand. My future was in ruins. My innocence was destroyed. And now, I was to be reduced to a servant, humiliated in front of the pack I once belonged to. I would be no better than a slave on a leash. The rejection would strip away the last remnants of my connection to Elias, severing the bond that had been my only solace. And the thought of serving Naomi, being at her spiteful mercy, was almost too much to bear. But I would bear it. I would endure. I had to. I had no choice. Chapter 3 Mates The next day, the sun was beginning to rise as I stood in Naomiโ€™s lavishly decorated room. Golden rays filtered through the sheer curtains, casting a warm glow on the ornate furniture and the array of dresses sprawled across the bed. I was helping Naomi with the dress she was going to wear in her coronation ceremony. The fabric was soft and luxurious, a deep shade of emerald that complemented her striking features. As Naomi slipped into the dress, she admired her figure in the mirror, her eyes gleaming with pride and anticipation. She turned to get a better look, her smile widening. While she admired herself, my mind couldnโ€™t help but slip to the past. Memories of our childhood together, of the times we were inseparable, flooded my thoughts. The mischievous adventures, the laughter, and the bond we once shared felt like a lifetime ago. โ€œHey! Where is your head at? Your Luna needs some help here!โ€ Naomiโ€™s voice snapped me back to the present. She looked at me petulantly, her arms crossed, the smile replaced by a slight frown. โ€œSorry,โ€ I mumbled, stepping forward to help her with the intricate details of her dress. As I adjusted the delicate lace around her shoulders and fastened the tiny buttons, I could feel the old closeness resurfacing. Despite everything, the connection we had was undeniable. While helping with her crown, I canโ€™t help feeling close to her again. The crown was heavy, encrusted with jewels that sparkled in the morning light. It symbolized power, authority, and a future that Naomi was eagerly stepping into. I placed it gently on her head, making sure it was perfectly aligned. โ€œDo you remember when we were kids?โ€ I asked softly, hoping to reach some part of the Naomi I once knew. She glanced at me; her face expressionless. โ€œI do,โ€ she replied. โ€œWe were quite the troublemakers.โ€ I nodded, encouraged by her words. โ€œWe had fun back then,โ€ I said. โ€œEverything was simpler.โ€ Naomiโ€™s face hardened and she snapped, โ€œThose days are gone, Iris. Iโ€™ve grown up. I had to.โ€ โ€œI know,โ€ I whispered. Then, feeling brave, I added, โ€œBut I miss the girl you used to be. That girl laughed and cared about others.โ€ Naomi whirled around to face me fully, her eyes cold and unyielding. โ€œThat girl was weak. She didnโ€™t understand what it takes to lead, to survive.โ€ โ€œIs that why you hate me?โ€ I asked, the question slipping out before I could stop it. Naomiโ€™s eyes flashed with anger. โ€œHate you? You took everything from me, Iris. Jasper was supposed to be mine, and you stole him.โ€ I shook my head, tears welling up. โ€œI didnโ€™t steal him. I wasnโ€™t something I had control over. You know that.โ€ โ€œControl?โ€ Naomi spat. โ€œThatโ€™s what it is all about. And now, I have it. I have the power to make my own choices. And as for you, Iris, donโ€™t think for a second that Iโ€™ve forgotten what you did. I will enjoy watching you suffer. Consider it payback for all those years I lived in your shadow.โ€ The venom in her words struck me like a blow. I had known Naomi was angry, bitter even, but this level of hatred was beyond what I had imagined. I looked into her eyes, searching for any hint of the friend I once knew, but all I saw was a stranger. โ€œI donโ€™t want to do this,โ€ I said weakly. โ€œI just want my friend back.โ€ She laughed, a cold, mirthless sound. โ€œYour friend?โ€ She asked, as if the words were strange to her. โ€œThat girl is gone, Iris. And what you see now is what I have become, what I had to become. You can either accept it or suffer the consequences.โ€ I couldnโ€™t leave it there. I had to ask one last question. โ€œYou never told me, who is your mate?โ€ Naomiโ€™s eyes flickered with an emotion I couldnโ€™t quite place. She was a few months younger than me, so when she got her wolf, I was already Jasperโ€™s mate. โ€œHe is gone,โ€ Naomi said. She looked at me in the mirror with a dangerous smirk. I blinked, trying to process her words. โ€œGone?โ€ I asked. โ€œWhat do you mean?โ€ โ€œI asked Jasper to get rid of him as soon as I found out who he was,โ€ she said nonchalantly, examining her nails. โ€œHe is not my mate. He is only an obstacle standing between me and my true happiness.โ€ I was shocked. The weight of her words settled heavily on me. โ€œNaomi, how could you?โ€ I asked, shaking my head in disbelief. She shrugged, her eyes cold and detached. โ€œHe was nothing to me,โ€ she explained, โ€œJust a name, a face. My destiny is far greater than being tied to someone who would hold me back.โ€ I couldnโ€™t handle it anymore. A wave of nausea hit me, and I started to dry-heave. The room spun around me, and I grasped the edge of the vanity to steady myself. Naomiโ€™s face turned white and then red with anger as I covered my mouth, gagging up spit. She stepped closer, her voice low and threatening. โ€œDonโ€™t play any games, Iris. You know even if you are bearing Jasperโ€™s child, it wonโ€™t change a thing. Besides, I wonโ€™t let it happen. Chapter 4 The Rejection Today is the coronation day of Naomi, and I was waiting in my room for Jasper to come and reject me. My heart pounded and it was getting harder and harder to breath. I paced back and forth, unable to stand still. My bedroom, usually a place of comfort, felt like a prison today. I could hear the sounds of bustling activity, preparations for Naomiโ€™s big day underway. The grandeur of the occasion was lost on me, overshadowed by the impending rejection. โ€œIt is for the best,โ€ I said to my wolf, Molly. โ€œMy life will be more livable after the rejection,โ€ I said, trying to convince myself of the truth of my words. โ€œNaomiโ€™s resentment is only misguided. I can try and get her to trust me again after. At least I would have her back. And if I am to work as her servant, making amends would make my life easier in that regard.โ€ My wolf whimpered, her sadness mirroring my own. โ€œI know, Molly,โ€ I said, sitting on the edge of my bed. โ€œItโ€™s justโ€ฆ this bond with Jasper has become too heavy a burden to bear. Maybeโ€ฆ maybe it is better this way.โ€ Just then, the door creaked open, and Jasper walked into the room. Jasper was dressed impeccably, his black suit highlighting his strong, commanding presence. His eyes, however, were void of the warmth they once held for me. They were cold, detached, a stark reminder of the gulf that had grown between us. โ€œLetโ€™s just get it over with,โ€ he said, his voice devoid of any emotion. The words cut through me. After all of this, I wasnโ€™t even worth a few minutes of his time. I was just something to cross off his checklist. Even though I was in pain, I forced myself to remain stoic. โ€œSure,โ€ I answered, matching his tone. My voice was flat, empty, reflecting the hollowness I felt inside. But then, something in Jasperโ€™s expression changed. His eyes softened, and a hint of a smirk played at the corners of his mouth. โ€œYou know, if you beg nicely, I can put you in a cute little houseโ€ฆโ€ The suggestion was both insulting and infuriating. I squared my shoulders, meeting his gaze head-on. โ€œNo need,โ€ I said quickly. โ€œI am fine being Naomiโ€™s maid.โ€ His smirk disappeared, replaced by a look of irritation. โ€œYou despite me, donโ€™t you?โ€ he said, pulling off his perfectly knotted tie with a sharp, frustrated movement. I didnโ€™t answer, my silence speaking volumes. The truth was, I didnโ€™t despite him. Even now, I still couldnโ€™t. I despised the situation, and the circumstances that had led us here. But before I could speak, he closed the distance between us, his hands gripping my hands firmly. His grip was firm, almost bruising, as he pulled my hands over my head. The intensity in his eyes both terrifying and magnetic. His forceful and demanding kiss left no room for hesitation. The kiss was the culmination of our pent-up anger and frustration, a desperate attempt to reclaim something that had long been lost. His hands swimming, and I responded by tangling my hands in his hair, pulling him closer. His suit jacket was the first to go, hitting the floor with a soft thud. My hands moved to the buttons of his shirt, fumbling in my haste. One by one, they gave way, revealing him slowly. His eyes darkened with desire as he took in the sight of me. For a brief moment, the anger seemed to melt away, replaced by a raw, unfiltered hunger. He traveled lower, kissing, and I shivered in anticipation. I was completely vulnerable now at his mercy. But I wanted this, I needed it more than I could express. The sensations were overwhelming. โ€œJasper,โ€ I gasp, tugging at his hair. He pulled back, his eyes meeting mine with a predatory gleam. We moved in perfect sync, a dance of passion and desperation. I felt the pressure building, a tight coil in me ready to snap. Jasperโ€™s movements became erratic, his breath coming in harsh pants. The wave crashed over me, leaving me breathless and trembling. Jasper collapsed beside me as he caught his breath. I lay there, staring at the ceiling. For a brief moment, everything else faded away. I thought of Elias. Here, about to be rejected, desperately needing Jasperโ€ฆ I thought of Elias. Jasper shot out of the bed without warning, looking at me with anger and maybe a little hurt in his eyes. โ€œIโ€™m glad that I am going to be done with you and this stupid betrayal pain,โ€ he spat, his voice laced with bitterness. The realization hit me. Now I knew why he never failed to show up at the worst of times. โ€œDonโ€™t.โ€ He cuts me off when I try to say something. He stopped me from saying anything further, his hands raised in a silent plea. The rejection ceremony began, the ancient words of separation flowing out of him. I spoke in a shaky voice but said them as well. The breaking of the mate bond was excruciating. It felt like a part of my soul was being ripped away. The pain was so intense, so overwhelming, that I passed out. As consciousness slipped away, I felt a warm liquid on my legs. Panic surged through me, but I was too weak to move. My last thought before darkness claimed me was a single, horrifying realization. It was blood. I have just begun to feel a subtle vitality in my body few days ago. Now this vitality has turned into deathly silence. Could it be... Chapter 5 The Coronation I woke up to someone rocking me violently. The world around me was a blur, and my head throbbed with pain. โ€œWake up! The coronation is about to start! Naomi is waiting for you!โ€ The voice was urgent, insistent, pulling me out of the darkness. My vision slowly cleared, and I recognized one of Naomiโ€™s attendants, her face pinched with annoyance. When she left, I struggled to sit up, aching from the aftermath of the rejection. I glanced down and found blood on my legs, a stark reminder of what happened. My heart ached, not just from the physical pain but from the realization of what I had lost. My wolf, Molly, was quieter than usual, her sadness mirroring my own. โ€œWe could have had a lovely little puppy.โ€ I heard her painful whispering. The bond with Jasper, once a source of strength and joy, had been brutally severed, leaving us both wounded. I took a deep breath, trying to steady myself. I forced myself to freshen up, washing away the traces of blood and tears. The reflection in the mirror showed a pale, haunted face, but there was no time to dwell on it. Naomi needed me. Despite everything, I still had to fulfill my duties. I dressed quickly and made my way to Naomiโ€™s room. Naomi looked at me with worry as I entered the room, her eyes briefly softening. But then she quickly masked it with condescending pity. โ€œWell, well, well. I guess you took the rejection pretty hard there I see,โ€ she said, her voice dripping with false concern. I didnโ€™t say anything, my silence a shield against her taunts. The pain was too fresh, too raw to respond. The coronation of the new Lune in our pack was a monumental event, attracting every powerful Alpha on the continent along with their Lunas. The grand hall was filled with people, the air buzzing with anticipation. Even the recently reappeared Lycan King had answered the invitation, his presence adding to the gravity of the occasion. The invitation had suggested that the new Luna was going to be me, the new Alphaโ€™s mate and the daughter of the old Beta. So people were shocked when Jasper got up to make his announcement. He radiated authority, the perfect image of an Alpha ready to lead. His dark eyes scanned the room, momentarily resting on me, and I felt a pang of loss. The crowd fell silent as the air filled with expectation. โ€œThe Great Pack,โ€ Jasper began, addressing them as one. โ€œThank you for coming to this occasion. Today, we mark the beginning of a new era.โ€ He paused, allowing his words to sink in. There was a murmur of excitement from the crowd, their eyes fixed on him. Jasper had always been a compelling speaker, able to command attention with ease. โ€œAs you all know,โ€ he continued, โ€œthe position of Luna is one of great importance. It is a role that requires not only strength and wisdom but also the unwavering support of the Alpha.โ€ He took a breath, his gaze hardening as he said, โ€œBut before I name my new luna, I must inform you that I have rejected my mate.โ€ Gasps and murmurs of disbelief rippled through the crowd. My heart pounded, each word a dagger twisting deeper. I stood there, frozen, as Jasperโ€™s declaration shattered the expectations of everyone present. โ€œThis new Luna will be my true love, Naomi,โ€ Jasper announced, his voice resolute. He gestured towards Naomi, who stood beside him with a victorious smile. โ€œShe is the daughter of a loyal supporter, someone who has stood by me and our pack through thick and thin. Her dedication and commitment are beyond question.โ€ Naomi stepped forward, her face glowing with pride and satisfaction. She basked in the attention as the guests looked on, their expressions ranging from surprise to confusion to pity. โ€œI assure you,โ€ Jasper continued. โ€œThis decision was made with the best interests of the pack in mind. Naomi and I will lead this pack with strength, wisdom, and a commitment to our shared future.โ€ The crowd remained silent, absorbing the news. I stared at the ground, standing silently beside the beaming Naomi, accepting the pitying glances of those around me. My heart was heavy, but I kept my head down, determined not to let them see my pain. Naomi beamed, basking in her newfound status. I remained silent as my emotions churned. Just then, Molly alerted me excitedly that my mate was in the crowd. My heart skipped a beat, fear gripping me at the thought that the rejection between me and Jasper hadnโ€™t worked. But Molly reassured me otherwise, her excitement infectious. I scanned the crowd, my eyes searching for the source of Mollyโ€™s enthusiasm. And then, my eyes locked with a man I thought I would never see again. Elias. LEARN_MORE https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12040&u Random Reading https://www.facebook.com/61560831098071/ 21 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 befant.com DCO https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12040&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/448653827_795098069497837_1012817998787489267_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=a7jv0AN1rOIQ7kNvgFluXW2&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AT8S_WeTI5LWrOreHf0R0Wd&oh=00_AYBbK5UUA8UOeO37tGp3t5jihQBjBNyj8XBpd3Gn6ED-Nw&oe=673061ED PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Random Reading 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,751
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357750}'
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”ฅ๐Ÿ”ฅClick to read the next chapter for free๐Ÿ‘‰ ๐Ÿ’”Everyone in Norvania knew who Nathan Morrison was. But nobody knew I was his wife. More sadly, when I was tortured by criminals, he was sleeping with another woman... LEARN_MORE https://theryfhvn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=1102 Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 theryfhvn.com VIDEO ๐Ÿ˜Read the next chapters๐Ÿ‘‰ https://theryfhvn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=11024&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/450095515_1825556534586500_540213116580460266_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=p9hrHiJ1L9AQ7kNvgGEpbul&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AT8S_WeTI5LWrOreHf0R0Wd&oh=00_AYDadVa0LpipBac8P16hVns4j9FoRNCP2hvaGZ4vK_7gcA&oe=673072FE PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,755
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357753}'
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”ž๐Ÿ”ฅ Continuer la lecture โžคโžค โ€œAre you thinking about my brother again?โ€ New Alpha Jasperโ€™s voice cut through the stillness of the room, dragging me from the edge of sleep. The sight of mate made my heart race, a mix of fear and longing. His tone was playful, but the tension in his posture betrayed his anger. His brother, Elias, was the rightful heir to the pack, he had been my boyfriend until his death. He was a kind-hearted soul without a wolf, and that made him easy prey for Jasper, who seized power after their fatherโ€™s sudden demise. In addition to the alpha position, he took more than just power from Elias. Fate is a cruel mistress. After he kicked Elias out of the pack and cut ties with me, I found out that Jasper was my mate. Now, on the anniversary of that tragic day, the weight of my memories was almost too much to bear. Now, I canโ€™t control myself. I had to speak out. I rolled over to face him, my heart sinking at the sight of his piercing green eyes, dark with suspicion. โ€œWhat if I was? I do miss him.โ€ I asked flippantly. Jasperโ€™s jaw tightened. His playful demeanor shifted instantly. He crossed the room in a few powerful strides and stood at the edge of my bed. His presence was overwhelming, and I felt a familiar, unwelcome heat rising within me. โ€œIris,โ€ he growled. โ€œYou should know better.โ€ โ€œElias was better than you in every way,โ€ I snapped, unable to keep the bitterness out of my voice. โ€œEven without his wolf, he was more of a leader than you could ever be.โ€ Jasperโ€™s eyes flashed with fury, and in an instant, his hand was around my neck, his knee forcing my legs apart. He leaned in close, his breath hot on my neck. โ€œWatch your tongue, my dear mate. You are speaking to your Alpha. Your little lover is long gone, and donโ€™t you ever forget that.โ€ My pulse quickened, a confusing blend of fear, anger, and want. โ€œYou will always be a pathetic nobody,โ€ I spat. โ€œWith or without him.โ€ Jasperโ€™s face darkened with rage, but he controlled himself, a dangerous smile surfaced. โ€œElias is gone,โ€ he whispered, his breath tickling my ear. Suddenly he crushed his mouth against mine, his kiss so powerful and insistent I tasted my own blood. Despite myself, my body responded. The bond between us was undeniable, a cruel joke played by the moon goddess. His movements set my skin aflame, and I hated myself for wanting him. This man had taken everything from me, and yet here I was, craving him, needing him. Suddenly, my back hit the bed, familiar breathing tickles my neck. My anger warred with the fire he ignited in me, and I couldnโ€™t resist giving in to him. His hands cover me, possessive and demanding. I couldnโ€™t stop the sounds that escaped. Jasper smiled when he heard it. โ€œYou canโ€™t deny what we are to each other,โ€ he whispered, his voice rough with need. โ€œNo matter how much you want to hate me.โ€ โ€œI do hate you,โ€ I managed to say, though the breathlessness in my voice betrayed me. He chuckled darkly. โ€œHate me all you want, Iris,โ€ he said sensually. โ€œIt wonโ€™t change a thing.โ€ But I couldnโ€™t escape the memories of Elias. He had such gentle hands, such kind eyes. He loved me softly without all the violence and domination that Jasper brought. Eliasโ€™s hands had always moved over me with reverence, his fingers trailing lightly over my skin as if I were something precious. He adored me, and I worshiped him. His kisses had been tender, each one a silent vow of love and devotion. Jasper was different. He was possessive, demanding. He claimed me with rough, urgent hands that left bruises in their wake. His face crashed against mine with a hunger that bordered on violence, leaving no room for softness or tenderness. His teeth grazed my skin, leaving marks to show the world that I was his and his alone. I tried to hold on to the memories of Elias, to the way he had made me feel cherished and loved. I tried, but I failed. They slipped away with each brutal movement, every bruising kiss. Guilt twisted in my gut; a sharp, bitter ache that mingled with the physical pleasure Jasper gave me. Tears of anguish slipped down my cheeks, unnoticed by Jasper in his enjoyment. His hands gripped me tightly, his fingers digging passively into my flesh as he moved. The bed creaked under our combined weight, the sound a harsh counterpoint to the soft sounds that escaped me. Jasperโ€™s eyes were dark with possessiveness, his face twisted in a mixture of triumph and desire as he watched me beneath him. โ€œLook at you,โ€ he breathed, โ€œyou canโ€™t get enough, can you?โ€ I wanted to deny it, to scream that he was wrong, but the words caught in my throat. My body betrayed me, responding to his words even as my heart cried out for Elias. His movement became more frenzied, that left me gasping. โ€œThatโ€™s it,โ€ he growled. โ€œYouโ€™re mine, Iris. Donโ€™t you ever forget that.โ€ His pace quickened, his breath growing ragged. My nails dug into his shoulders, leaving red marks in his skin as I clung desperately to him. The room seemed to spin, my world narrowing to the brutal, unrelenting rhythm of him against me. The pleasure washing over me in a wave that left me trembling. For a moment, we lay there, our bodies entwined, the only sound was our labored breathing. Jasperโ€™s weight pressed down on me, grounding me in the present even as my mind drifted to the past. When he finally rolled off me, I turned away, curling into a ball. The dull throb matched the pain in my heart. Jasperโ€™s hand brushed my hair back from my face, his touch surprisingly gentle. โ€œIris,โ€ he said softly, but I didnโ€™t respond. I couldnโ€™t. The word lodged in my throat, a tangled knot of sorrow and longing. He didnโ€™t finish his sentence, getting up from the bed and dressing quickly. I watched him silently. He walked to the door before turning around. โ€œOh, by the way,โ€ he said casually, as if discussing the weather, โ€œI plan on rejecting you on Friday. Just a heads up.โ€ The words hung in the air, sharp as a blade. Chapter 2 Future Jasperโ€™s words stung, but I was used to his cruelty. His announcement shouldnโ€™t have been a surprise. He loved to taunt me. And the only reason he hadnโ€™t rejected me sooner was that I served as his useful prop, showcasing his supposed kindness and benevolence as the new Alpha. Rejecting me, his mate, wouldnโ€™t have looked good as an new alpha to the pack, although I was the girlfriend of the former rightful heir. But now his reign was secure. And he could do whatever he wanted. I should have felt triumphant, knowing that soon I would be free from his oppressive grasp, but the reality was far more complicated. I lay on my bed, staring at the ceiling. My mind scolded itself for being so overwhelmed with emotions. I shouldnโ€™t feel as shocked and betrayed as I did. I shouldnโ€™t feel anything at all. He took my parents and Elias. I should hate him. I really shouldnโ€™t have been surprised he had decided to reject me now. I should have known that was what he wanted. Behind the flirting and the occupying, he didnโ€™t want me. There was someone else. And I knew that. As if summoned by my thoughts, Naomi burst into my room, her eyes blazing with jealousy and rage. I hurried to cover myself, using the blankets on the bed, but she was too angry to notice or care. She stood by my bed, towering over me as if trying to assert her dominance, but she only succeeded in looking like an angry cat. โ€œHe was here again, wasnโ€™t he?โ€ she demanded, her voice sharp. I sighed, too caught up in my emotions to give her any kind of reaction. โ€œHe is the Alpha,โ€ I said, keeping my voice calm and even. โ€œHe comes and goes as he pleases.โ€ Naomi did not like that answer. Her hand struck my face with a sharp crack, the force of it turning my head to the side. I felt the familiar sting and the burn of tears that I refused to shed. Naomi crossed her arms, her eyes alight with hatred. But still, I did not have the energy to react. โ€œYou think you can win his heart with your body?โ€ She shouted, her voice echoing in my ears. โ€œHe is mine. He will always be mine. You are a toy! He will be bored of you soon enough!โ€ She never forgave me for being Jasperโ€™s mate. Even though it was nobodyโ€™s fault. We used to be best friends, growing up together as the daughters of the pack Beta and Gamma. I met her eyes. Even after all this, I didnโ€™t see her as anything but a hurt friend. I couldnโ€™t bring myself to hate her in return. I missed her. She was fierce, but kind. We used to be sisters in all but blood. We had even dreamed of mending the rift between Jasper and Elias as their better halves. But everything changed after my 20th birthday when the bond between Jasper and me was revealed. I hadnโ€™t meant to hurt her. Not after everything she did for me. She saved me from banishment after Jasper usurped the throne. Her father had helped Jasper, but my parents had died protecting Elias. She was there for me when I cried for them. But after my birthdayโ€ฆ her kindness turned to cold hatred. The sisterhood we once shared was shattered. And I was alone. Still, I couldnโ€™t hate her. I couldnโ€™t even be angry. I could only take whatever abuse she lay down. I felt I owed her that much. The sound of approaching footsteps broke through my thoughts, and I looked up sharply. Jasper entered the room, his presence overwhelming. Naomi immediately threw herself to the floor, crying out as if I had attacked her. โ€œShe pushed me for no reason!โ€ Naomi cried, the fake tears already dripping down her cheeks. Her voice was filled with fake innocence, and her eyes were wide and tearful. In an instant, Jasper was across the room. He picked Naomi up from the floor, cradling her in his arms. His expression hardened as he checked her for injuries, and he turned to look at me with cold disdain. He could have shouted at me. He could have yelled or scolded me for the supposed offense. But he didnโ€™t. He knew that wouldnโ€™t hurt me. So he did something much worse. โ€œThere is something I forgot to tell you about the rejection,โ€ he said, his voice low and icy. โ€œNaomiโ€™s coronation as Luna will be the same day. You will serve as her omega maid in the coronation after the rejection.โ€ He looked down at Naomi with a sickeningly loving gaze, brushing a wisp of hair from her face. โ€œThen you can punish her whenever you want, my dear,โ€ he whispered loud enough for me to hear. He kissed her softly. It looked so different from how he kissed me. It looked so loving. He knew what he was doing. He knew the pain I was going to experience. I couldnโ€™t even process it. All I could think about was how much he looked like Elias. The love in Jasperโ€™s eyes as he looked at Naomi shook me. He looked so much like the gentle and passionate Elias. I thought about how Elias had looked at me the same way. Jasper had taken that from me. Naomiโ€™s eyes gleamed with triumph as she nestled into Jasperโ€™s arms. He walked out without another word or glance in my direction, but Naomi peered over his shoulder at me with an ominous expression. I let myself fall into the bed, trembling. Only when the door was closed did I allow myself to fall apart. Jasper had officially taken everything from me. My parents were gone. My love was gone by his hand. My future was in ruins. My innocence was destroyed. And now, I was to be reduced to a servant, humiliated in front of the pack I once belonged to. I would be no better than a slave on a leash. The rejection would strip away the last remnants of my connection to Elias, severing the bond that had been my only solace. And the thought of serving Naomi, being at her spiteful mercy, was almost too much to bear. But I would bear it. I would endure. I had to. I had no choice. Chapter 3 Mates The next day, the sun was beginning to rise as I stood in Naomiโ€™s lavishly decorated room. Golden rays filtered through the sheer curtains, casting a warm glow on the ornate furniture and the array of dresses sprawled across the bed. I was helping Naomi with the dress she was going to wear in her coronation ceremony. The fabric was soft and luxurious, a deep shade of emerald that complemented her striking features. As Naomi slipped into the dress, she admired her figure in the mirror, her eyes gleaming with pride and anticipation. She turned to get a better look, her smile widening. While she admired herself, my mind couldnโ€™t help but slip to the past. Memories of our childhood together, of the times we were inseparable, flooded my thoughts. The mischievous adventures, the laughter, and the bond we once shared felt like a lifetime ago. โ€œHey! Where is your head at? Your Luna needs some help here!โ€ Naomiโ€™s voice snapped me back to the present. She looked at me petulantly, her arms crossed, the smile replaced by a slight frown. โ€œSorry,โ€ I mumbled, stepping forward to help her with the intricate details of her dress. As I adjusted the delicate lace around her shoulders and fastened the tiny buttons, I could feel the old closeness resurfacing. Despite everything, the connection we had was undeniable. While helping with her crown, I canโ€™t help feeling close to her again. The crown was heavy, encrusted with jewels that sparkled in the morning light. It symbolized power, authority, and a future that Naomi was eagerly stepping into. I placed it gently on her head, making sure it was perfectly aligned. โ€œDo you remember when we were kids?โ€ I asked softly, hoping to reach some part of the Naomi I once knew. She glanced at me; her face expressionless. โ€œI do,โ€ she replied. โ€œWe were quite the troublemakers.โ€ I nodded, encouraged by her words. โ€œWe had fun back then,โ€ I said. โ€œEverything was simpler.โ€ Naomiโ€™s face hardened and she snapped, โ€œThose days are gone, Iris. Iโ€™ve grown up. I had to.โ€ โ€œI know,โ€ I whispered. Then, feeling brave, I added, โ€œBut I miss the girl you used to be. That girl laughed and cared about others.โ€ Naomi whirled around to face me fully, her eyes cold and unyielding. โ€œThat girl was weak. She didnโ€™t understand what it takes to lead, to survive.โ€ โ€œIs that why you hate me?โ€ I asked, the question slipping out before I could stop it. Naomiโ€™s eyes flashed with anger. โ€œHate you? You took everything from me, Iris. Jasper was supposed to be mine, and you stole him.โ€ I shook my head, tears welling up. โ€œI didnโ€™t steal him. I wasnโ€™t something I had control over. You know that.โ€ โ€œControl?โ€ Naomi spat. โ€œThatโ€™s what it is all about. And now, I have it. I have the power to make my own choices. And as for you, Iris, donโ€™t think for a second that Iโ€™ve forgotten what you did. I will enjoy watching you suffer. Consider it payback for all those years I lived in your shadow.โ€ The venom in her words struck me like a blow. I had known Naomi was angry, bitter even, but this level of hatred was beyond what I had imagined. I looked into her eyes, searching for any hint of the friend I once knew, but all I saw was a stranger. โ€œI donโ€™t want to do this,โ€ I said weakly. โ€œI just want my friend back.โ€ She laughed, a cold, mirthless sound. โ€œYour friend?โ€ She asked, as if the words were strange to her. โ€œThat girl is gone, Iris. And what you see now is what I have become, what I had to become. You can either accept it or suffer the consequences.โ€ I couldnโ€™t leave it there. I had to ask one last question. โ€œYou never told me, who is your mate?โ€ Naomiโ€™s eyes flickered with an emotion I couldnโ€™t quite place. She was a few months younger than me, so when she got her wolf, I was already Jasperโ€™s mate. โ€œHe is gone,โ€ Naomi said. She looked at me in the mirror with a dangerous smirk. I blinked, trying to process her words. โ€œGone?โ€ I asked. โ€œWhat do you mean?โ€ โ€œI asked Jasper to get rid of him as soon as I found out who he was,โ€ she said nonchalantly, examining her nails. โ€œHe is not my mate. He is only an obstacle standing between me and my true happiness.โ€ I was shocked. The weight of her words settled heavily on me. โ€œNaomi, how could you?โ€ I asked, shaking my head in disbelief. She shrugged, her eyes cold and detached. โ€œHe was nothing to me,โ€ she explained, โ€œJust a name, a face. My destiny is far greater than being tied to someone who would hold me back.โ€ I couldnโ€™t handle it anymore. A wave of nausea hit me, and I started to dry-heave. The room spun around me, and I grasped the edge of the vanity to steady myself. Naomiโ€™s face turned white and then red with anger as I covered my mouth, gagging up spit. She stepped closer, her voice low and threatening. โ€œDonโ€™t play any games, Iris. You know even if you are bearing Jasperโ€™s child, it wonโ€™t change a thing. Besides, I wonโ€™t let it happen. Chapter 4 The Rejection Today is the coronation day of Naomi, and I was waiting in my room for Jasper to come and reject me. My heart pounded and it was getting harder and harder to breath. I paced back and forth, unable to stand still. My bedroom, usually a place of comfort, felt like a prison today. I could hear the sounds of bustling activity, preparations for Naomiโ€™s big day underway. The grandeur of the occasion was lost on me, overshadowed by the impending rejection. โ€œIt is for the best,โ€ I said to my wolf, Molly. โ€œMy life will be more livable after the rejection,โ€ I said, trying to convince myself of the truth of my words. โ€œNaomiโ€™s resentment is only misguided. I can try and get her to trust me again after. At least I would have her back. And if I am to work as her servant, making amends would make my life easier in that regard.โ€ My wolf whimpered, her sadness mirroring my own. โ€œI know, Molly,โ€ I said, sitting on the edge of my bed. โ€œItโ€™s justโ€ฆ this bond with Jasper has become too heavy a burden to bear. Maybeโ€ฆ maybe it is better this way.โ€ Just then, the door creaked open, and Jasper walked into the room. Jasper was dressed impeccably, his black suit highlighting his strong, commanding presence. His eyes, however, were void of the warmth they once held for me. They were cold, detached, a stark reminder of the gulf that had grown between us. โ€œLetโ€™s just get it over with,โ€ he said, his voice devoid of any emotion. The words cut through me. After all of this, I wasnโ€™t even worth a few minutes of his time. I was just something to cross off his checklist. Even though I was in pain, I forced myself to remain stoic. โ€œSure,โ€ I answered, matching his tone. My voice was flat, empty, reflecting the hollowness I felt inside. But then, something in Jasperโ€™s expression changed. His eyes softened, and a hint of a smirk played at the corners of his mouth. โ€œYou know, if you beg nicely, I can put you in a cute little houseโ€ฆโ€ The suggestion was both insulting and infuriating. I squared my shoulders, meeting his gaze head-on. โ€œNo need,โ€ I said quickly. โ€œI am fine being Naomiโ€™s maid.โ€ His smirk disappeared, replaced by a look of irritation. โ€œYou despite me, donโ€™t you?โ€ he said, pulling off his perfectly knotted tie with a sharp, frustrated movement. I didnโ€™t answer, my silence speaking volumes. The truth was, I didnโ€™t despite him. Even now, I still couldnโ€™t. I despised the situation, and the circumstances that had led us here. But before I could speak, he closed the distance between us, his hands gripping my hands firmly. His grip was firm, almost bruising, as he pulled my hands over my head. The intensity in his eyes both terrifying and magnetic. His forceful and demanding kiss left no room for hesitation. The kiss was the culmination of our pent-up anger and frustration, a desperate attempt to reclaim something that had long been lost. His hands swimming, and I responded by tangling my hands in his hair, pulling him closer. His suit jacket was the first to go, hitting the floor with a soft thud. My hands moved to the buttons of his shirt, fumbling in my haste. One by one, they gave way, revealing him slowly. His eyes darkened with desire as he took in the sight of me. For a brief moment, the anger seemed to melt away, replaced by a raw, unfiltered hunger. He traveled lower, kissing, and I shivered in anticipation. I was completely vulnerable now at his mercy. But I wanted this, I needed it more than I could express. The sensations were overwhelming. โ€œJasper,โ€ I gasp, tugging at his hair. He pulled back, his eyes meeting mine with a predatory gleam. We moved in perfect sync, a dance of passion and desperation. I felt the pressure building, a tight coil in me ready to snap. Jasperโ€™s movements became erratic, his breath coming in harsh pants. The wave crashed over me, leaving me breathless and trembling. Jasper collapsed beside me as he caught his breath. I lay there, staring at the ceiling. For a brief moment, everything else faded away. I thought of Elias. Here, about to be rejected, desperately needing Jasperโ€ฆ I thought of Elias. Jasper shot out of the bed without warning, looking at me with anger and maybe a little hurt in his eyes. โ€œIโ€™m glad that I am going to be done with you and this stupid betrayal pain,โ€ he spat, his voice laced with bitterness. The realization hit me. Now I knew why he never failed to show up at the worst of times. โ€œDonโ€™t.โ€ He cuts me off when I try to say something. He stopped me from saying anything further, his hands raised in a silent plea. The rejection ceremony began, the ancient words of separation flowing out of him. I spoke in a shaky voice but said them as well. The breaking of the mate bond was excruciating. It felt like a part of my soul was being ripped away. The pain was so intense, so overwhelming, that I passed out. As consciousness slipped away, I felt a warm liquid on my legs. Panic surged through me, but I was too weak to move. My last thought before darkness claimed me was a single, horrifying realization. It was blood. I have just begun to feel a subtle vitality in my body few days ago. Now this vitality has turned into deathly silence. Could it be... Chapter 5 The Coronation I woke up to someone rocking me violently. The world around me was a blur, and my head throbbed with pain. โ€œWake up! The coronation is about to start! Naomi is waiting for you!โ€ The voice was urgent, insistent, pulling me out of the darkness. My vision slowly cleared, and I recognized one of Naomiโ€™s attendants, her face pinched with annoyance. When she left, I struggled to sit up, aching from the aftermath of the rejection. I glanced down and found blood on my legs, a stark reminder of what happened. My heart ached, not just from the physical pain but from the realization of what I had lost. My wolf, Molly, was quieter than usual, her sadness mirroring my own. โ€œWe could have had a lovely little puppy.โ€ I heard her painful whispering. The bond with Jasper, once a source of strength and joy, had been brutally severed, leaving us both wounded. I took a deep breath, trying to steady myself. I forced myself to freshen up, washing away the traces of blood and tears. The reflection in the mirror showed a pale, haunted face, but there was no time to dwell on it. Naomi needed me. Despite everything, I still had to fulfill my duties. I dressed quickly and made my way to Naomiโ€™s room. Naomi looked at me with worry as I entered the room, her eyes briefly softening. But then she quickly masked it with condescending pity. โ€œWell, well, well. I guess you took the rejection pretty hard there I see,โ€ she said, her voice dripping with false concern. I didnโ€™t say anything, my silence a shield against her taunts. The pain was too fresh, too raw to respond. The coronation of the new Lune in our pack was a monumental event, attracting every powerful Alpha on the continent along with their Lunas. The grand hall was filled with people, the air buzzing with anticipation. Even the recently reappeared Lycan King had answered the invitation, his presence adding to the gravity of the occasion. The invitation had suggested that the new Luna was going to be me, the new Alphaโ€™s mate and the daughter of the old Beta. So people were shocked when Jasper got up to make his announcement. He radiated authority, the perfect image of an Alpha ready to lead. His dark eyes scanned the room, momentarily resting on me, and I felt a pang of loss. The crowd fell silent as the air filled with expectation. โ€œThe Great Pack,โ€ Jasper began, addressing them as one. โ€œThank you for coming to this occasion. Today, we mark the beginning of a new era.โ€ He paused, allowing his words to sink in. There was a murmur of excitement from the crowd, their eyes fixed on him. Jasper had always been a compelling speaker, able to command attention with ease. โ€œAs you all know,โ€ he continued, โ€œthe position of Luna is one of great importance. It is a role that requires not only strength and wisdom but also the unwavering support of the Alpha.โ€ He took a breath, his gaze hardening as he said, โ€œBut before I name my new luna, I must inform you that I have rejected my mate.โ€ Gasps and murmurs of disbelief rippled through the crowd. My heart pounded, each word a dagger twisting deeper. I stood there, frozen, as Jasperโ€™s declaration shattered the expectations of everyone present. โ€œThis new Luna will be my true love, Naomi,โ€ Jasper announced, his voice resolute. He gestured towards Naomi, who stood beside him with a victorious smile. โ€œShe is the daughter of a loyal supporter, someone who has stood by me and our pack through thick and thin. Her dedication and commitment are beyond question.โ€ Naomi stepped forward, her face glowing with pride and satisfaction. She basked in the attention as the guests looked on, their expressions ranging from surprise to confusion to pity. โ€œI assure you,โ€ Jasper continued. โ€œThis decision was made with the best interests of the pack in mind. Naomi and I will lead this pack with strength, wisdom, and a commitment to our shared future.โ€ The crowd remained silent, absorbing the news. I stared at the ground, standing silently beside the beaming Naomi, accepting the pitying glances of those around me. My heart was heavy, but I kept my head down, determined not to let them see my pain. Naomi beamed, basking in her newfound status. I remained silent as my emotions churned. Just then, Molly alerted me excitedly that my mate was in the crowd. My heart skipped a beat, fear gripping me at the thought that the rejection between me and Jasper hadnโ€™t worked. But Molly reassured me otherwise, her excitement infectious. I scanned the crowd, my eyes searching for the source of Mollyโ€™s enthusiasm. And then, my eyes locked with a man I thought I would never see again. Elias. LEARN_MORE https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12040&u Random Reading https://www.facebook.com/61560831098071/ 21 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 befant.com DCO https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12040&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/448653827_795098069497837_1012817998787489267_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=102&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=a7jv0AN1rOIQ7kNvgFluXW2&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=AT8S_WeTI5LWrOreHf0R0Wd&oh=00_AYBbK5UUA8UOeO37tGp3t5jihQBjBNyj8XBpd3Gn6ED-Nw&oe=673061ED PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Random Reading 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,836
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357747}'
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ˜Read the next chapters๐Ÿ‘‰ Chapter 1 โ€œSir, Madam is not feeling well," the butler of the Gannon mansion reported on the phone. The man at the end of the line spoke in a nonchalant tone. "So, take her to the hospital. Iโ€™m not a doctor." The line died immediately. The butler was so pale, beads of sweat formed on his forehead. Zora relaxed her back against the sofa, feeling weak from abdominal pains. Trying to mask the pain, she asked hopefully. โ€œWhat did he say?โ€ The butler instantly put on a calm smile when he turned in her direction. โ€œMadam, sir said he will meet us at the hospital.โ€ Zoraโ€™s eyes lit up. Ezrah had not been home for almost three days, and she was missing him so much. This sickness seemed to be her lucky charm to get him to her side again. โ€œOkay. Letโ€™s go.โ€ Zoraโ€™s heart warmed at the fact that Ezrah at least cared about his child. Both of them were caught in a scandal two years ago, so getting married was the only way to curb the situation. Ezrahโ€™s stance was clear through it all. โ€œWhen everything calms down, we are getting a divorce.โ€ Zora hoped that by that time, she would have been able to melt his cold heart and make him fully hers, so her hopes were high. However, over time, she found him slowly drawing away from her, even when they worked together in the same company and shared the same bedroom. Two months ago, Ezrah returned and asked Zora for a divorce but chanced upon the test results. His expression was dark. โ€œLetโ€™s hold off on the divorce until after the child is born, but donโ€™t expect to remain Mrs. Gannon. That title belongs to somebody else, but itโ€™s definitely not you.โ€ The marriage after those words had been terrible. Ezrah barely returned home, barely got intimate with her. The only reason she still bore Mrs. Gannon was because of the child in her womb. Zora thought that his reason for being away was because of work since he was the CEO of the Gannon Group, a multibillion-dollar company where Zora also worked as an assistant manager. Unknown to Ezrah, Zora had been secretly in love with him for five years, but that drunk night at her best friend Cocoโ€™s birthday party, Zora woke up in bed with Ezrah. She decided to keep it a secret and a memory she would forever cherish when the media picked up the news. Ezrah could not allow the scandal to ruin his well-kept reputation and cause him losses, so he announced that he and Zora were already dating secretly and were soon getting married. Zora, who had been madly in love with him, was excited about the news of getting married to Ezrah. Zora hoped that with time, his heart would warm up towards her, but that did not happen. Even in her state, Ezrah hardly spent the night at home. On the way to the hospital, Zoraโ€™s phone beeped, and looking at the content, her heart dropped. Ezrah was holding the delicate hand of a beautiful woman, a proud smile on his face. The caption read, โ€˜Mr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ€™ Zoraโ€™s eyes were swollen with tears. As they dropped down her cheeks, she refused to believe it. Maybe it was photoshopped. There was never any news about Ezrah dating any woman before she had a baby for him. He never even warmed up to women. The man had long been secretive and kept his face from the media. Also, the butler Rudolph had said that Ezrah promised to meet them at the hospital, so the media must be spreading this false news to gain popularity. Even after everything, she still could not help the unease in her heart, instantly dialing his number. Despite him warning her to only communicate with him through the butler, Zora took the bull by the horn this time. Her call went through, but there was no answer. Her old self would have given up, but due to the unease in her heart because of the news, she couldnโ€™t bring herself to do so. On the fourth ring, a woman answered the call. Her melodious voice made Zora feel less of a woman. โ€œEzrah is in the bathroom.โ€ Zoraโ€™s hands holding the phone shook, her heart in tatters. Ezrah never allowed her to touch his phone, but this woman casually answered his call, and was he really in the bathroom? Zora felt the pain in her chest worse than that of her abdomen. โ€œWho are you?โ€ The words forced themselves out of her mouth. The woman responded casually, โ€œPiper, his fiancรฉe. And you are?โ€ โ€œWhatever he saved my name with,โ€ Zora responded calmly. The pain of the news was more than she could bear. Though knowing that Ezrah never loved her, she thought they could live in peace for the sake of the baby in her womb, but Ezrah never meant to make her dreams come true. The woman at the end of the line moved the phone from her ear to have a better view of the caller ID. โ€œOh, Zora. If itโ€™s urgent, I could drop a message for you when he comes out.โ€ The nights Ezrah spent away when Zora thought he was busy at work, it was a great disappointment that he was with the woman he loved, leaving her to suffer with her unborn child. She was still in her first trimester, and due to all the morning sickness and other health issues, Zora had taken a break from working at the company to recover first. Her mind lacked clarity, and she was beginning to doubt all the responses she got from Rudolph when she asked him to get in touch with Ezrah. โ€œJust tell him to call me.โ€ Zora ended the call. At the hotel room, Ezrah returned from the meeting in the conference room. Since he never allowed anyone to answer their calls during meetings, he equally left his phone in the presidential suite meant for his relaxation. โ€œWhat are you doing with my phone?โ€ He asked as soon as he entered the bedroom. Before Piper spoke, he asked again, โ€œand I made it clear that you should wait for me at the lounge. How did you have access?โ€ The pout on Piperโ€™s lips only made her cuter as she faked anger. โ€œIs it wrong for me to come? We would have gotten married if Zora had not appeared.โ€ Ezrah was a man who loved to keep his love life private. He and Piper had been in a secret long-distance relationship. The night they arranged to meet at the birthday party of one of his business partnerโ€™s sister, Piper had an emergency and could not attend as planned. That night, he mysteriously ended up in bed with Zora, an incident that should have been brushed under the carpet until the media took hold of it. Not wanting his well-maintained reputation to crack, he apologetically married Zora, promising Piper to divorce Zora secretly after two years when the news dies down. Things took a different turn when he found the test result after promising Piper that he was ending things with Zora. โ€œI told you I was working on it. You should keep yourself hidden away from the press. We shouldnโ€™t be seen together.โ€ Ezrahโ€™s voice was stern. It was business for him first, and he didnโ€™t want Piperโ€™s presence to ruin it for him. Piper was uneasy at the reminder. Forcing a smile, she relayed, โ€œI could be your confidential secretary. Please Ezrah, I donโ€™t want to be away from you anymore.โ€ Ezrah did not give a response. His actions were always well thought out. It wasnโ€™t easy for him to be the CEO of the legendary Gannon Group as the youngest of three sons. Any wrong move and his elder brothers would begin to fight for the position. โ€œDid anyone call?โ€ He was scrolling through his phone when he caught sight of Zoraโ€™s name. โ€œYeah. Zora. She said you should call her,โ€ Piper responded with a smile, her fingers sliding over her exposed thighs as she lay seductively on the luxurious king-size bed. โ€œWhat did you tell her?โ€ Ezrah frowned a little. He wanted to keep Piper a secret until after the divorce. โ€œI pretended not to know about her existence.โ€ Piper lifted herself to a sitting position, and due to the long slit of the dress, her full thighs were exposed, but Ezrahโ€™s attention was on the phone in his hand. โ€œDo me a favor and donโ€™t answer my calls again.โ€ His voice had lost its warmth. Piper faked remorse. โ€œIโ€™m sorry. I thought it was urgent.โ€ Ezrah finally held her gaze as he spoke roughly, โ€œNothing about Zora is ever urgent.โ€ Chapter 2 Piper was very happy with his remark, but Zora was still Misses Gannon, the title Piper had long coveted. How she wished that night had not happened. If only that useless man had not appeared when she was about to leave for the airport to board the private jet, she would have been the one waking up in bed with Ezrah. It pained her that it had to be that woman, Zora. โ€œEzrah, are you sure you will divorce her?โ€ Ezrah hated to be doubted. โ€œYou donโ€™t believe me? Iโ€™m only with her because sheโ€™s carrying my child. As soon as heโ€™s born, I will divorce her.โ€ Piper smiled with satisfaction, and since she had mentally stored Zora's number after answering the call, she sent the recording to her. Remembering that the butler had called Ezrah informing him that Zora was sick, she asked after deleting the audio from her phone. โ€œCan you go shopping with me? I didnโ€™t bring enough clothes.โ€ Even if Zora showed the audio to Ezrah, Piper would deny it as she had used a number Ezrah didnโ€™t know to send it. โ€œI have another meeting in two hours, so you have an hour and a half to finish shopping,โ€ Ezrah said softly. Zoraโ€™s heart tightened in her chest when she played the audio. The butler who was driving the car felt helpless, equally disappointed in his boss. Zora asked from the back seat of the luxurious car she was seated in. โ€œDid he really tell you he was coming to the hospital?โ€ The butlerโ€™s throat went dry. He always succeeded in making up excuses for his boss, but this time, everything backfired. That audio destroyed everything. โ€œIโ€™m sorry, maโ€™am. I just didnโ€™t want to see you sad.โ€ Zoraโ€™s heart twitched, a bitter smile curled the corner of her lips, feeling like a fool as tears welled up in her eyes. She was nothing to Ezrah. The little surprises sent to ignite her hope were merely prepared by the butler. No matter how hard she tried, she couldnโ€™t recover from the pain as she felt a force hit the car from the side, causing it to swerve off the road and somersault thrice. The butler was instantly unconscious. Zora felt unbearable pain, blood sputtered from her mouth and nose, then in between her thighs. No words could describe the agony as she watched the life draining out of her with intense pain settled in her abdomen. She managed to pick up her phone, which had fallen to the side from the impact, dialing her husbandโ€™s number. Unable to lift the phone to her ear, she activated the speaker. โ€œZora. Iโ€™m busy.โ€ That was what Ezrah said as soon as he answered the phone, not waiting to hear what she had to say. After all, nothing about Zora was ever urgent to him. Before she lost consciousness, she heard the laughter of a woman with the words, โ€œEzrah, I want these shoes.โ€ โ€œTry them on. If they fit, you can have them.โ€ โ€˜So, shopping with a woman is what you call busy.โ€™ That was what Zora thought before losing consciousness. Zora woke up at the hospital after hours of surgery. Her face was as pale as a ghost, her countenance pitiful. Her butler, Rudolph, sat at her hospital bed, a smile on his face. He had sustained a few injuries, but they were not serious, and he was already discharged. โ€œMadam, you are awake. Thank God.โ€ Zora was glad to see that Rudolph was fine. There were just bruises on his face. He quickly rushed out to call a doctor. โ€œMrs. Gannon, how are you feeling?โ€ The doctor asked as he examined Zora, writing a few things on a writing pad he carried along. Zora was only concerned about one thing. โ€œHow is my baby?โ€ Zora asked. The doctorโ€™s eyes dulled. โ€œIโ€™m very sorry, but your baby couldnโ€™t survive the impact.โ€ Tears brimmed in the back of Zoraโ€™s eyes, but she fought them back. She lost everything. She left her fatherโ€™s company to work for her husband, nurturing his business and enduring all the taunts of his arrogant family. At twenty-three, she had nothing to show for the man she had secretly loved for five good years. โ€œItโ€™s alright. She would have just suffered anyway.โ€ Her heart had turned cold due to the loss of the child. โ€œExcuse me?โ€ The doctor was shocked. He expected her to cry like any woman in her situation would, but Zora bottled it in. She could endure all of Ezrahโ€™s indifference towards her, but she would never forgive him for the loss of her child. That woman appeared, and Zora suddenly got involved in an accident. The case had to be investigated, but as for Ezrah, he no longer had a place in her heart. โ€œSorry, that was not directed at you.โ€ There was no warmth in Zoraโ€™s apologetic voice. The doctor forced a smile, finished his examination, and left. Zora stared at the butler at the doorway. He stood there since the doctor arrived. Zora was about to tear down but couldnโ€™t do so. She had been weak for too long, leading to the death of her child. If she had left the first time Ezrah asked her for a divorce, this would not have happened. When she discovered this baby, she decided to consent to the divorce and leave. At least, she would have his child to remind her of the relationship they once shared. Unfortunately, the test result fell from her handbag, Ezrah saw it. Even when he decided for them to wait until after she gave birth, his treatment of her was no better. โ€œWhere is Ezrah?โ€ Zora asked. Butler Rudolph was scared. He could feel the cold in Zoraโ€™s voice, and even with the distance, he could feel the chills. โ€œMadam, the man who hit us was drunk, and he died on the spot. The police are not able to contact his family either,โ€ Rudolph reported, trying to avoid answering her question. He was a middle-aged man. Zora did not believe the report but kept it to herself. The moment she discovered that the man she respected so much was lying to her, her trust in him dwindled. She will find ways to investigate the matter by herself. โ€œThat isnโ€™t my question.โ€ โ€œBoss left here a few minutes ago,โ€ Rudolph answered. Zora was enraged this time. Not only Ezrah but Rudolph, the butler Ezrah assigned to her, was equally taking her for a fool. โ€œDonโ€™t lie to my face again.โ€ Her voice was stern and full of contempt. Rudolph pursed his lips, his head lowered. โ€œBoss said, and I quote. โ€˜Itโ€™s rather unfortunate. Let the doctors take care of her. Iโ€™m very busy at the moment.โ€ Zora knew what he was busy with. It was the woman whose voice she heard in the audio. She thought she was strong enough to take it, but a tear fell from her eyes before she could stop it. Ashamed of showing her weak side in front of Rudolph, she discharged him. โ€œThank you, and please excuse me.โ€ Rudolph was never supposed to leave Zora's side, so he was reluctant. โ€œMaโ€ฆโ€ โ€œI said, excuse me, Rudolph,โ€ Zoraโ€™s voice raised, Rudolph decided to wait in front of the door. โ€œOkay.โ€ As soon as he left the ward, Zora dialed a number. โ€œSophโ€ฆโ€ โ€œDad, Iโ€™m sorry. I made a mistake, and now, I lost everything.โ€ Zora didnโ€™t hold back her tears as she spoke to her father on the phone. He was against the marriage the moment he realized that Ezrah did not feel the same way Zora felt about him, but she was optimistic, insisting that Ezrah would change. Expecting her father to scold her an, โ€˜I told you soโ€™ lecture, his voice was rather soft as he asked her. โ€œWhat happened, Zora?โ€ โ€œI had an accident and lost the baby. Iโ€™m coming home.โ€ The silence at the end of the line was deafening. She knew her father was saddened about the loss of his grandchild. When she was about to end the call, he suddenly said, โ€œOh Zora. Iโ€™m coming to get you. Just send me your location.โ€ Zora refused. She couldnโ€™t leave until she was legally separated from Ezrah. โ€œNo dad, I have a few things to do first.โ€ โ€œWhat is that? Let me help you with it?โ€ Her father eagerly said, but she was in no mood to burden the middle-aged man. The loss had caused Zora to mature so fast as the reality of life hit her. No more would she depend on anyone. It was time to do something worthwhile with her life, but first of all, she will still have to face Ezrah for the last time. โ€œDonโ€™t worry. Itโ€™s nothing I canโ€™t handle. โ€œOkay. We shall prepare your welcome party. I will inform your mom.โ€ Zora smiled and didnโ€™t refuse her fatherโ€™s kindness. Three days later, she was discharged from the hospital. As she waited for Ezrahโ€™s return, she got the divorce papers ready. It was three days later in the dead of the night when Ezrah returned, tired-looking but his attractive features remained untouched by his fatigue. Zora had lost sleep, waiting for Ezrah during most of the days. As soon as she heard the sound of the car, she quickly rushed downstairs but paused on top of the stairs when Ezrah walked through the door of the living room. Arriving home, Ezrah no longer met the woman who always met him with a smile. She stood on top of the stairs and yelled with a cold expression, โ€œGood news Ezrah! Our baby died in a car accident. There is nothing between us, so letโ€™s get a divorce.โ€ The man who was always cold to her instantly panicked. He stood momentarily frozen. Chapter 3 Ezrah was baffled by the news. Twice, he had asked her for a divorce and saw how gloomy she turned at the subject. This was what he wanted but he couldnโ€™t help the unease filling his heart. Was it because Zora was the one asking? Was she trying to mess up his reputation with the loss of the child? Ezrah was confused. Zora descended the stairs, walking to the dining table. Ezrah did not utter an acceptance or rejection of her request for a divorce and went up the stairs, returning after ten minutes in loungewear. Seemed he wasnโ€™t going out or was it the shock from the news? Seeing the dinner table hosting different delicacies, excitement filled his heart as he took a seat. If she really wanted a divorce, then she wouldnโ€™t have cooked for him. At this moment, Piper was momentarily forgotten. Ezrah avoided Zoraโ€™s gaze as this was the first time she was so cold to him. Without alerting her of his arrival, she still ensured that his supper was ready. As he uncovered one of the dishes, his eyes darkened as he glared at her. It was not the food he was expecting but rather, the cold divorce papers, with a pen beside them, waiting to be signed. โ€œWhat is this?โ€ Ezrah was furious, being famished from not having time to eat. In times past, Zora would have been worried and tried to appease him but that Zora was gone. After crying her eyes out for days, she waited to serve Ezrah these cold documents, she had no more tears to shed but her eyes were dangerously red. โ€œDo I need to get you a pair of glasses?โ€ Her voice was taunting, as she saw the shocked expression on his face. He must have taken her request as a joke the first time but the documents exposed the reality. โ€œWhy? Were you expecting me to cook when I had no idea when you will be home?โ€ Ezrahโ€™s expression was blank. She could have made the maids do it. It burned Zora that she could not read his emotions but she didnโ€™t care anymore. โ€œPlease sign the papers. In case the prints are too tiny, I got you a magnifying glass,โ€ she dropped the item in front of him. Ezrah was not irrational. When he asked for a divorce, he ensured that there would be nothing for the media to feed on but now that they just lost a child? What will people think? His parents liked Zora, except his two elder brothers who always saw her as a threat. The situation was complicated now. Ezrah never thought she would stand on it to ask for a divorce because of how she always claimed to love him, not caring if he was just cold to her. He needed time to think. โ€œWe shall talk about it later,โ€ he finally said and was about to stand up when Zora played an audio from her phone. With her mind made up, she wanted the divorce here and now. The woman in front of Ezrah was different from the one he always came home to. She always wore attractive clothes with a little makeup to seduce him which sometimes worked but after his release, Ezrah would return to being cold. Today, Zora did not have on any makeup. Her hair was not even combed. All she wore was pajamas, her long dark hair looking lifeless, in contrast to Ezrah who was looking so attractive. He had the looks and physique Zora used to die for but not anymore. All she felt for him now was resentment. She suddenly matured past looks or smartness in a man. What was there in being hot and a genius in business when there is no conscience or empathy? Zora was just seeing that the man she has always been obsessed with was a selfish monster, caring only about his own image, money, and passion. Whatever blinded her eyes before was removed the moment she woke up on that hospital bed. The voice from the audio was as clear as daylight. A female and a male but the male voice was indeed that of Ezrah. Female: Iโ€™m sorry. I thought it was urgent. Male: Nothing about Zora is ever urgent. Female: Ezrah, are you sure you will divorce her? Male: You donโ€™t believe me? Iโ€™m only with her because sheโ€™s carrying my child. As soon as heโ€™s born, I will divorce her. Zora caught an expression of guilt on his face but there was no remorse. His voice was hard. โ€œWhere did you get that?โ€ He demanded. Piper could not have done this, right? She had no contact with Zora. But it was just the two of them in the room. Were there secret cameras? Though confused, his expression returned to being blank. โ€œYou have to destroy that audio before I sign this paper,โ€ he threatened her. Zora could not tell how she managed to pretend that she was fine. Up until now, he didnโ€™t even care to apologize for sharing their private information with whatever name he calls the woman in his life. What on earth could have made her fall in love with such a man? He was different from that man from a long time ago who saved her from the pool when she was bullied by some jealous friends. Ezrah did not remember that day but that was when Zora fell in love with him. She calmly showed him another caption on her phone. โ€˜Mr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ€™ This time, Ezrah paled but his eyes were dark and he picked up his phone instantly. He couldnโ€™t find the person who took those pictures and how they went viral but had to get someone to take them down. The hacker would also be able to find out who sent that information to the press. Zora had grown thorns after listening over and over to the audio and reading that news on her phone. Ezrah had already told her the same thing so this shouldnโ€™t hurt. โ€œIt doesnโ€™t matter. The hindrance has already been removed and you already have a woman waiting for you. Just sign the freaking papers.โ€ Chapter 4 Ezrah paced back and forth elegantly, his mind filled with confusion and fear after ending the call. โ€œYou want to blackmail me? How much do you want?โ€ He was enraged and disdained that Zora would resort to such means, but he was willing to pay to prevent the audio from going viral. His parents would not hesitate to demote him despite his hard work in the company, while his lazy elder brothers would benefit without putting in the effort. โ€œWhat I want, you already gave, but since the accident took it away, there is nothing you can give me.โ€ She did not disclose her suspicions, as she had someone investigating the matter. Ezrah suddenly laughed mockingly. โ€œYour fatherโ€™s company is not as strong as you think. He has been seeking an alliance with me. You want fifty percent of my hard work.โ€ This could be the reason Zora was pushing for the divorce. Fifty percent from the Gannon Group would elevate her family business to new heights. She felt bitter that he would think so poorly of her. Despite her feelings, she kept her composure. โ€œNo. You were the one who proposed the divorce, so were you planning to leave me with nothing?โ€ Her question left him speechless, and she reminded him of the prenup agreement. โ€œDid you forget that I signed a prenup before marrying you? I just refreshed your memory so you are free to sign.โ€ Ezrah recalled that Zora had willingly proposed and prepared the prenup when they announced their marriage after the scandal. She did it all to prove to him that she wasnโ€™t โ€˜interested in his wealth. He suddenly felt uneasy. This was not the scenario he had anticipated when he entered the room. Besides, he was hungry and not in the right state to make such a decision. What if Zora was being supported by one of his brothers or both? โ€œYou may have dismissed it, but it's only a matter of time before you reveal that you left with nothing.โ€ Zora struggled to suppress the pain that came with realizing that Ezrah's delay in finalizing the divorce was not due to developing feelings for her or guilt, but rather to protect his image in front of the media and family. She felt a bitter smile form on her lips. โ€œTrust me, nothing about our divorce will be leaked to the media.โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t believe you,โ€ Ezrah responded bluntly. Zora had worked closely with him, and despite her absence from the office in recent weeks, she was privy to confidential information. Ezrah had never seen her as a threat due to her infatuation with him, but now he feared she might make his life difficult. โ€œAs soon as the papers are signed, you wonโ€™t hear from me again. You can have a happy life with the woman you love,โ€ Zora proposed. Ezrah was already contemplating how he could benefit from her disappearance after the divorce. It seemed like she wanted to start fresh somewhere far away. โ€œAlright. Iโ€™m not heartless. I will still give you 50 million,โ€ he said as he signed the document, only to find that Zora had already signed her part. After signing the divorce agreement, Ezrahโ€™s phone rang. Seeing it was Piper, he answered it and began to climb the stairs in long strides. Piper keeps breaking the agreement. She wasnโ€™t supposed to call him when she was home. Zora overheard him on the phone, โ€œAre you the one who recorded our conversation at the hotel?โ€ She couldnโ€™t hear Piperโ€™s response but had the conviction that it was her. Deciding it was best to spend the night on the sofa, Zora couldn't fathom sharing a room with him after their divorce. She was too exhausted to move to another room. Her sleep was restless, prompting her to wake up before Ezrah. She had already packed her bags, so she dressed and approached him. โ€œEzrah, itโ€™s time to finalize our divorce in court.โ€ Ezrah woke up and looked at her glumly. She was still in a somber mood, her eyes red despite the makeup. He sighed, โ€œjust a few minutes.โ€ An hour later, they arrived at the divorce court. With Zora having made prior arrangements, the process was swift, and they soon had their divorce certificates. Without hesitation, they signed their respective portions. โ€œYou should keep your word and leave New York for good, or else you wonโ€™t like what I will do,โ€ Ezrah warned solemnly. Zora had a faint smile on her face. โ€œI have a gift waiting for you at home.โ€ Ezrah frowned, wondering what kind of gift she arranged for him after their divorce. Zora has always been generous, buying him gifts and anything she knew he would like. He would neither accept nor refuse them. Whereas, he never used any of the gifts she bought for him. They left together, but Zora departed in a cab against his wishes to drop her at the airport. She reiterated that he would never see her again. Ezrah felt conflicted but remembered his promise to Piper. Despite his desire to head straight to the office for a meeting, curiosity got the best of him. He rescheduled the meeting and drove home to see the gift Zora had left for him. Upon arriving, he found a letter on the dining table addressed to him. โ€˜EZRAH.โ€™ He couldn't recall seeing it earlier that morning, and a sense of unease crept over him as he approached and opened the letter. It was written in Zoraโ€™s handwriting, unmistakable to him. As he read the words, fear, panic, and regret flooded his heart. The letter slipped from his trembling fingers as he cried out, โ€œZORA, WHAT HAVE YOU DONE?โ€ LEARN_MORE https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&u Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 shgjfh.com IMAGE https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/455221893_813763240917642_101917562725104758_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=101&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=gGM8bFJg0nQQ7kNvgEmqzXn&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=Ab7aibf0Cm3X6Nt7q8Q86Ki&oh=00_AYCRGO7HWEITJ-lY2lxCmvfBgX3LYP1Mg_d2Ri4AkFh8DQ&oe=67308ADC PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,358,256
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ˜Read the next chapters๐Ÿ‘‰ Chapter 1: PROLOGUE: Our three-year marriage is facing many challenges, and growing up as an orphan, who am I to expect anything better? My husband, Carter Whitlock, is everything Iโ€™ve ever dreamed of. Strong, kind, and fiercely devoted, heโ€™s swept me off my feet from the moment we first met. In his arms, Iโ€™ve found solace and belonging. My mother-in-law, Elmyra, always has a disapproving gaze thatโ€™s never far from my side. The other members of the Whitlock family, too, seem to regard me with suspicion and disdain, as if Iโ€™m an interloper in their midst. I long to earn their acceptance, to prove myself worthy of their family name. Each day, I strive to be the perfect wife for Carter, tending to his needs with care and devotion. Yet no matter how hard I try, it seems as though I can never quite measure up to their expectations. Even so, a sense of determination always stirs within me. I wonโ€™t be cowed by their judgment, nor wonโ€™t I allow their harsh words to dim the light of my love for Carter. I'll be strong and unwavering in my resolve, and Iโ€™ll make my husband proud. ------ Hazelโ€™s POV I have an unbelievable secret that I canโ€™t wait to tell my husband. With our three year anniversary coming up, itโ€™s about time we make our family complete. I hear the rumors being spread about me by his relatives; the whisper that Iโ€™m barren. I look down at the little pink plus sign on the test and I smile. Itโ€™s all going to change now. Carter will be so happy when I tell him. When I first met Carter at college, I had just stepped out of the campus coffee shop and a cyclist almost ran me over. Carter stepped in and grabbed me out of harmโ€™s way. I instantly felt butterflies in my stomach. He has been my hero from the very beginning. He is the city's most famous bachelor. and an incredibly rich man. I never thought he would be interested in someone like me. I had nothing to give him. Because of that, I have always felt inferior to him in our marriage. Not everyone approved of the marriage from the beginning. The house staff is respectful, but I think itโ€™s only because I am the mistress. Not because they think I deserve it. I see the judgment in their eyes when they look at me. Both my mother-in-law and sisters-in-law are constantly making comments about my appearance. They love to remind me that I represent the formidable Whitlock family. As if my looks and the way I dress will forever stain their familyโ€™s image. I wasnโ€™t even allowed to make any decisions on my own wedding. I tried to pick out the flowers and I was told my taste was โ€˜too simpleโ€™ for a wedding to the most nobel family. I have also been told on several occasions that I should be โ€˜seen and not heardโ€™ during family meetings. Nobody trusts my opinion, let alone asks for it. Carterโ€™s mother, Elmyra, has always been distant and indifferent to me. She treats me like an outcast and every time she approaches me I get nervous. Her hair is always perfectly done up; her makeup and clothes flawless. She is an intimidating woman and she often makes me feel small. She knows exactly what to say to cut deeply too. โ€œI suppose you are happy riding my sonโ€™s coat tails the rest of your life? What purpose do you serve if you canโ€™t give him an heir?โ€ โ€œItโ€™s probably for the best, dear. As an orphan, you wouldnโ€™t know the first thing about being a mother anyway.โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t know what my son was thinking when he decided to marry you. You arenโ€™t strong enough to be the lady of this family.โ€ But I know I can rely on Carter to protect me from her harsh words and actions when heโ€™s around. He even defends me against his mother when she is hard on me. โ€œI know you want to be a grandmother mom, but Hazel and I are happy. We will have a child when we are ready.โ€ Then he turns to me and kisses me on the forehead. I donโ€™t know why Elmyra hates me so much. It makes me feel bad about myself, like I will never be good enough for her son. But, from now on, everything is going to change. Even Elmyra will have to start treating me better once she hears the news. I have a husband who adores me, a beautiful home and now, after years of trying, a new addition on the way to make our family complete. Me, an orphan, finally getting a real family to call her own. Just then Carter walks out of the bedroom looking as handsome as ever with his dark blonde hair, piercing blue eyes and chiseled jaw. โ€œMorning, babe. Whatโ€™s for breakfast?โ€ Carter asks as he strolls into the kitchen. He kisses me on the cheek and lightly squeezes my wrist as he walks past me to get his coffee. โ€œEggs and bacon,โ€ I reply with a giggle. We eat our breakfast in companionable silence. I cherish every moment alone with my husband. I donโ€™t care what his mother or his other relatives think. I just want his approval. The one person who has truly loved me and been there for me in my life. While Iโ€™m standing at the sink washing dishes, I feel a presence behind me suddenly. Something cold and heavy is placed on my heart. I look down at the most beautiful diamond necklace Iโ€™ve ever seen. It has a big cushion cut stone in the center and smaller stones wrapping up the sides of the necklace. โ€œCarter! What is this for?โ€ I ask breathlessly. โ€œFor being so beautiful,โ€ he replies. He leads me over to a mirror on the wall and I gasp in surprise. โ€œItโ€™s stunning,โ€ I say in awe. โ€œTonight Iโ€™d like you to wear it to dinner with that short black dress I like. And, when we get back Iโ€™d like you to wear only this,โ€ he says suggestively. โ€œYes, sir,โ€ I say softly. I tip my head back to allow him access to my lips. He kisses me deeply and caresses my body and I lean into him. โ€œI wish I could stay in bed all day with you, but this meeting is important,โ€ he moans and steps back. โ€œI will be waiting for you,โ€ I say with a coy look. โ€œWhat would I do without you? You are the love of my life,โ€ he replies. He gives me another quick kiss and then heโ€™s headed towards the door. I sigh happily, thinking about how much Iโ€™m going to miss him today. We had already planned on going out to dinner, but now it's going to be special. I will tell him Iโ€™m with child tonight and surprise him. Out of the blue, my phone rings. I see that itโ€™s my best friend, Lillian. Iโ€™ve been so focused on being the perfect wife for Carter that Iโ€™ve lost touch with many of my friends. But Lilian is different. She knows everything about Carter and me. She knows how my mother-in-law and the other family members treat me. She has always been there for me. She knows what to say to make me feel better about anything. -[โ€œHi, Hazel. How are you?โ€]- she asks. โ€œIโ€™m doing ok,โ€ I say. -[โ€œYour voice doesnโ€™t sound ok. Spill it.โ€]- โ€œItโ€™s nothing, just had a visit from Elmyra.โ€ -[โ€œYou really shouldnโ€™t put up with her crap, Hazel. Talk to Carter about it, maybe he can get her to lay off.โ€]- โ€œI appreciate that but I think that will just make me look weak to her. Sheโ€™s a complicated woman,โ€ I say. -[โ€œSheโ€™s a shrew,โ€]- Lillianโ€™s sarcasm makes me laugh. โ€œSpeaking of which, I have to get ready for this afternoon tea so she doesnโ€™t have my head. Talk later?โ€ I ask. -[โ€œSo youโ€™ll be gone all afternoon?โ€]- โ€œYes, unfortunately. These ladies love to drone on about family traditions,โ€ I reply and then add, โ€œWhy, do you need something?โ€ -[โ€œNo, Iโ€™m ok. I was going to ask you to lunch but another time. Iโ€™m always here for you Hazel so if it gets too much give me a call.โ€]- โ€œThank you. You are such a great friend,โ€ I reply warmly. I hang up with Lillian and feel a pang of regret. Iโ€™m going to make it a priority to dedicate more time to our friendship. My day is over quickly. The tea goes very well and I decide to head home early. Usually, Iโ€™d follow the women back to Elmyra's house for dinner. I always want to be part of them. But this time, Iโ€™m very tired. I walk into our apartment and set my bag on the counter. I hum to myself, excited about seeing Carter soon. I start to walk into the kitchen when I hear a noise. It sounds like a moan. I stop what Iโ€™m doing instantly. Fear creeps up my spine. I make my way back towards the sound and I hear it again. Then I hear a bang noise and I almost jump out of my skin. My heart is pounding and my legs feel shaky. Something is wrong. I know it in my gut. I start to push the door open slowly and it makes a small creaking sound. What I see makes me gasp. A woman is grinding on top of Carter and heโ€™s moaning. He grabs her groin and looks up at her adoringly. I feel like someone has just ripped my heart out. My breathing becomes erratic. I start to panic. My knees feel like jello. I clutch the door frame for support. How could he do this to me?! This man who said I was the love of his life just this morning! This man who gave me a beautiful necklace and told me he hated leaving me! Just then, the woman turns to me with an evil grin. Like sheโ€™s enjoying making me watch in horror. I canโ€™t believe my own eyes. I draw shaky breaths as tears fall down my face. My heart pounds mercilessly as I lock eyes with Carterโ€”the man Iโ€™ve once loved, now a mere stranger before me. Everything I thought I knew about my husband. About my life. Destroyed in an instant. The sight before me shocks me to my core. Lillian and Carter. In our bed. Making love. Chapter 2: The man who says he loves me in the morning is now making love with my best friend. Carter's hands roam over Lillian's underdressed body, his lips trailing feverish kisses along her neck, while Lillian's laughter echoes in the room like a cruel taunt. My throat constricts. I want to curse, to scream, to lash out at them with every ounce of fury burning inside me. But my voice fails me, lost in a desert of despair. Finally, Carter and Lillian notice my presence, their affection abruptly extinguished like a candle snuffed out by a gust of wind. My tears fall unchecked now, hot and bitter against my cheeks. Carter scrambles to his feet, hastily pulling on his clothes. โ€œWhy are you here?โ€ he asks. Lillian remains on the bed, a smirk playing at the corners of her lips, her gaze cold and calculating. She revels in my agony, relishing the destruction she has wrought. โ€œItโ€™s not what you think it is,โ€ Carter says. My heart shatters into a million jagged pieces. I need to get out of here! I clutch at my ventricle, willing my heart to keep beating. Carter catches up to me, his hand reaching out to touch my arm, but I recoil from his touch as if burned. "Hazel, letโ€™s talk," he demands, his voice raw with emotion. But I shake my head, my resolve hardening with each passing moment. โ€œTalk about what?โ€ My voice is a mere ghost of its former strength. โ€œAbout how you slept with my best friend behind my back?โ€ Now, I'm left shattered, questioning every moment of intimacy with Carter, every laugh shared with Lillian. Was it all a facade, a cruel illusion of love and friendship? The pain is unbearable, the disbelief suffocating! I make it back to our house after a hazy drive. I ascend to the master bedroom, my movements fueled by a desperate need to escape. With trembling hands, I begin to pull out my clothes and belongings from the cabinets and drawers, stuffing them haphazardly into a suitcase. I donโ€™t care how messy it looks, donโ€™t care about anything except getting away from all of it! "Whatโ€™s gotten into you this time?" Elmyra calls out, breaking through the haze of my grief. I turn to her, standing in the doorway, her eyes narrowed, her jaw clenched. Her aura exudes mockery and arrogance. I manage to choke out, "Iโ€™m leaving." Elmyra hisses, as if wanting to curse at me. But before she can speak again, I brush past her, down the stairs and flee from the house, my suitcase clutched tightly in my numbing hands. I steady my breath, then climb into my car and start the engine, the roar of the motor drowning out the tumultuous thoughts swirling in my mind. I drive without direction; my subconscious takes control of the steering wheel and leads me to the only place I may feel safe - my parents' house. Mama is actually waiting for me at the threshold, Iโ€™m overwhelmed that I ignore the fact why she knows Iโ€™m coming. I walk in the doorway and papa, whoโ€™s reading a paper, frowns and asks, "Why do you look like that?โ€ I sink onto the sofa, struggling to hold back my sobs. "What happened?" Mama perches on the edge of the sofa, her hand reaching out to brush away the tears that are staining my cheeks. I take a shaky breath, my heart constricting with pain. "I caught Carter and Lillian...together." I thought I'd have my parentsโ€™ support. But then, to my horror, their expressions darken, a look of apprehension crossing their faces. "Hazel," mama begins, her tone accusatory. "What have you done wrong?" Mamaโ€™s words suffocate me with its cruelty. โ€œHe is cheating on meโ€“!That asshoโ€“โ€ Slap! My head rears back from pain and shock. Papa just slaps me across the face! I hold my hand to my cheek. โ€œGo back to Carter now, apologize for leaving, promise him that you won't do it again and that you'll stay by his side.โ€ From the looks on their faces, I realize that they don't care about Carter's cheating. Only that I have brought disgrace upon them. Mamaโ€™s eyes are cold as she adds, "You must have done something wrong to cause Carter to cheat on you. Have you thought about what it would do to our family? Your brother's scholarship is still on Carter's dime. Your sister is about to out in the society and can't be dragged down by you. Now, do everything you can to not let Carter leave you.โ€ This is my parents, my adoptive parents. I grew up pleasing them and being the best student in school, but they never look at me. Being adopted at a young age will do that. You are so grateful to the people who have taken you in. You are terrified of making a mistake that they may send you back to the orphanage and decide to adopt another child. A child thatโ€™s more obedient, smarter, better. So you bust yourself trying to make them proud of you. You stifle any part of yourself that may talk back or speak up. It wasn't until I married Carter that papa accepted me. The day we got married was the happiest day of my life. I thought mama and papa have considered me family all these years, now it turns out I was wrong. They don't care about me, at all. Papa says, "Have you had enough, I'm going to call Carter and have him bring you home. " I canโ€™t take this anymore, this isnโ€™t what Iโ€™m here for! This place can't provide the safety or even the comfort I desperately need! I turn on my heels and storm out of the house with my suitcase in hands before they can react. Humiliated, despised, and helplessโ€ฆ as I begin to acknowledge that I lost my husband and my family on the same day. Chapter 3: It all clicks. The late night calls, the flirtings, the unusual caring with Lillian - their chuckles in bed, my parents' coldness, Elmyra's sneers. My mind replays these scenes over and over again, like a broken record. I sit on the edge of the bed of the apartment I rented since last night, the weight of the world keeps pressing down on my shoulders. Just as Iโ€™m sinking deeper into the darkness of my thoughts, my phone shatters the silence. I jolt as I wipe away my tears. My hand trembles slightly as I glance at the screen. Then, my jaw clenches in anger when I see the caller IDโ€”Lillian. โ€œReally? You still have the guts to call me?โ€ I hiss. -["Listen, Hazel, it's evident where his heart lies, and frankly, your dramatics won't change that. Just gracefully accept the truth and move on, like any sensible person would."]- Lilian says in her sweet voice, without a hint of remorse or shame. -[โ€œWe need to talk, Express Cafe, now.โ€]- My grip on the phone tightens, my nails digging into my palm as I fight to keep my composure. I force my anger down, steeling myself for whatever lies Lillian is about to spin. "Fool me once" I say courageously, โ€œIf you thinkโ€ฆโ€ -[โ€œDon't you want to know why and when your husband cheated on you?โ€]- She's been my best friend long enough to know what will pinch me. She hangs up, the silence that follows echoing in the small apartment like a deafening roar. Express Cafe is just a few minutes' drive away. I slip into a corner booth and wait, quickly smooth concealer around my swollen eyes, as I watch the door with bated breath. Lilian comes in blushing like a woman in love, and ironically, her love has turned out to be mine. An awkward silence ensues and we stare at our respective coffee cups for a while. โ€œWhy, Lillian?โ€ I finally ask. "Hazel, you need to face the truth. Carter loves me, not you. He's only with you because he wants an heir, a baby. Once he gets what he wants from you, he'll leave you for me." "Is that so?" I ask, my voice trembling slightly despite my best efforts to maintain my composure. A very faint smile plays at the corners of Lilianโ€™s lips that she tries so hard to hide by tilting her head down as she reaches into her bag and produces her phone. With a few taps of her finger, she turns the screen towards me, revealing a string of text messages between her and Carter. "He's been seeing me behind your back, Hazel," Lilian says, her voice holding a tinged of a smug satisfaction. "He's been telling me everything. How he can't stand being with you, how he's only staying with you for appearanceโ€™s sake. He's using you, and you're too blind to see it." My breath dries in my throat as I read the messages. The Carter in the text messages is nothing like the husband I knew. I can tell by his texts that he is happy, which makes my heart ache even more. โ€œBut what does that have to do with why you betrayed me? You were my best friend,โ€ I say, trying not to show how much these messages hurt me. โ€œAt first we were friends, but then I realized I could never really respect you. The way you let people walk all over you...Iโ€™m sorry but itโ€™s just pathetic. And then I stayed close to you so I could be near Carter,โ€ she replies. โ€œHe never loved you, Iโ€™m always his true love. He met me first. โ€ she continues. I swallow a lump in my throat and quietly take a deep breath. โ€œHow long has this been going on?โ€ I ask. โ€œPretty much since the beginning. A few months into your marriage, maybe,โ€ she says without remorse. My head is reeling with the idea that Carter has been cheating on me for so long. Iโ€™m shocked that Lillian has such a mean streak. Sheโ€™s never my friend to begin with. How could I have let these kinds of people into my life, into my heart? Just then I hear the door jingle, prompting me to look up. To my shock, Carter appears. โ€œYou called Carter?โ€ I ask Lillian in a horrified tone. โ€œYou two really need to talk. You need to think about your life choices, accept the reality and it's good for all of us.โ€ she replies snidely. She gets up to leave and Carter takes her place in the opposite chair. "Come home with me. We had a good time, didn't we? We can still live the life we had before. Itโ€™s not like you donโ€™t enjoy the things we do together,โ€ he says. He tries to run his hand up my arm but I slap him away. โ€œDonโ€™t touch me. I only enjoyed them when I thought I was the only one you were doing it with!โ€ I whisper between my gritted teeth. "I'm the only one who can stand you in bed, you know how boring you used to be in bed? I made you moan over and over. You know you still want me..." He stares at me with those cold eyes. The eyes I once loved. Heโ€™s finally stopped pretending. Itโ€™s all been an act. I see that now. Carter changes his personality to suit his needs. He manipulates people to get what he wants. He manipulated me before and heโ€™s trying to do it again! I say nothing, trying to keep my anger in check. โ€œI donโ€™t know why you are fighting this so hard. Most women would die to be in your place. Theyโ€™d be very happy to get even the tiniest scrap from me,โ€ He pauses, waiting for my reply. But I keep my silence. โ€œYou agreed to my terms. I have your signature on the prenuptial agreement to prove it. So get over yourself and fulfill your duty to me. Then you can go on about your sad little life, while I rise to the top and make my family proud,โ€ he boasts. โ€œDid you ever love me?โ€ I ask. "Love is too strong of a word.โ€ He laughs out loud as if he has heard something ridiculous. โ€œYou have good breeding, your parents assured me like you would be an obedient wife, and all along you've done well. Why don't you keep it up? Come home now, before I run out of patience." Heโ€™s never loved me. His tone reminds me of the new racehorse he bought last month. A new, premium racehorse, presentable, brings him victories and can be bred to produce foals again. He never sees me as a wife, or even as a person. โ€œNot a chance,โ€ I say proudly. โ€œRemember your prenup? If you don't bear me children, you will be ruined. Your family will be in debt for the rest of their lives. Don't you dare try to leave me.โ€ His pupils dilate like that of a wild animal's, and he chokes me with his hand. I can barely breathe, I can feel heโ€™s serious about hurting me, this man I had loved is literally taking my breath away. โ€œIโ€™m leaving you, one way or anotherโ€ฆ." With what strength I have left I try to remove his hand and finish the sentence with the last of my breath. My peripheral vision sees that people are already whispering and looking over at us, and some even take out their phones and start taking pictures of us. โ€How are youโ€ฆโ€ He growls, low and dangerous. He notices the look in the crowd's eyes, and I'm betting he wonโ€™t dare make a scandal like domestic scandal in public if he wants to remain reputable. He stares at me with anger in his eyes. He then lets go and I can finally breathe heavily. I cough, calling his bluff. He finally breaks the stare and leaves in a huff. The look on his face is absolutely worth it. I may have to pay the consequences later. But for now, I feel free for the first time in my life. I will leave Carter, no matter the cost. Chapter 4: Read your contract - This should be on my tombstone. I dug out my prenup from when papa told me not to worry about anything, that they would protect me and all I had to do was sign it, and so I did. But now, I realize that every conditioning of this prenup is working against me. My parents sold me into marriage, and theyโ€™ll be furious with me for getting a divorce. Theyโ€™ll be bankrupt and vulnerable to attacks without Carterโ€™s protection. โ€œIf you want a divorce, you wonโ€™t get a penny from me. You will no longer be under my protection. Think twice, Hazel.โ€ Those are Carter's words, which are burned in my memory. I just wanna brush off the agreement and his threat by not thinking too much about them. But then, they start to haunt me, making me understand the realness of it all. Escaping isnโ€™t a possibility, and Carter proves thatโ€ฆ The rain pours as I stand on the doorstep of my rented house, the water mingles with the tears I try so hard to hold back. โ€œYour husband's men took your car. I was about to tell you while theyโ€™re here so you can talk to them about it, but theyโ€™re so aggressive and I got scared that they may hurt me,โ€ my landlord says. A rush of anger and helplessness courses through me as I stare at the empty space of the parking lot where I last left my car. As if thatโ€™s not enough for Carter, he adds another unwanted surprise for me. โ€œAlso,โ€ the landlord begins, pity and fear etched across her wrinkled face. "Your husband called through the cellphone of one of his men. He threatened me, said he'd ruin my business if I don't evict you. So.., I can't keep the house rented to you anymore.โ€ The world seems to tilt, the ground shifting beneath my feet. "B-but, I have nowhere to go. Besides, I need time to find a new place." The landlord shakes her head, her face stern. "I can't risk it. The young Whitlock has too much influence. I can't afford to be caught in whatever marital problem you have." I wanna protest again, but sheโ€™s right. Carter may put her in a difficult situation like heโ€™s doing to me now, and I donโ€™t wanna be the reason for it. With a heavy heart, I pack my things, and drag myself and my suitcase out into the storm. I then head to the nearest hotel. Without cash, I rely on my credit cards. The clerk at the front desk shakes his head as he hands back my credit card to me. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. Your card has been declined." My cheeks burn with shame. "Can you try again, please?" The clerk tries again,... and beep! Declined, again! Maybe this hotelโ€™s POS machine isnโ€™t working - at least thatโ€™s what I wanna believe in, though deep down, my inkling is telling me something else. I walk to another hotel, and approach the front desk, my hands shaking as I present my credit card. "I need a room, please," I say, trying to keep my voice steady. To my surprise, without even taking my credit card, the clerk shakes her head. "I'm sorry, Mrs. Whitlock. We can't help you." โ€œWhy?โ€ I ask with a little frustration. The manager, who looks uncomfortable, comes to the clerkโ€™s rescue, and answers, โ€œMr. Carter Whitlock has banned you from our hotel." Youโ€™ve got to be kidding me? Where would I go now? Thereโ€™s no refuge for me now. Carterโ€™s reach is far and his influence powerful, making sure Iโ€™m isolated, vulnerable. Heโ€™s trying to force me back, cutting me off financially, stripping away my options. Soon I will be in debt and poor, which isnโ€™t good, especially that Iโ€™m now going to be a mother. I have to find a way out of this, and the only temporary solution I can think of is to pawn my pearls and earrings for some cash. I quickly head to a pawnshop, and its owner eyes me as I lay my jewelry on the counter. "I need to cash these," I say. He picks up the pearls, turning them over in his hands, his eyes narrowing as he glances at my suitcase. "You left home?โ€ โ€œY-yes, and itโ€™s hard to find a place to stay. My credit cards have been declining, so I need cash.โ€ The owner smirks as he says, โ€œNice pieces, but I can't give you much for them. Market's down, you see." My heart sinks. I know heโ€™s lying, taking advantage of my desperation. But what choice do I have - haggling? Then what? Get another rejection? I donโ€™t wanna face with that. "How much?" I ask, bracing myself. He names a figure thatโ€™s insultingly low, but I nod, swallowing my pride and the bitter taste of defeat. "I'll take it." At least I have money that'll last for a few days if I spend it wisely. Thatโ€™s what matters for now. He counts out the bills with deliberate slowness while his eyes on me, a predator sensing vulnerability. When he finally hands over the money, I grab it. But I have to stay in the lobby for a moment, waiting for the rain to stop. Suddenly, my eyes flicker on the TV thatโ€™s currently showing a flash news with a caption; โ€˜The Divorce of the Centuryโ€™. The wife, once vilified by the town, now stood vindicated by Marius Thorne, the town's most revered lawyer. โ€œMarius Thorne,โ€ I echo. Marius Thorneโ€™s image flashes on the screen, a vision of confidence and success. His gold eyes, piercing, enchanting even. According to the news, he's a partner at the biggest law firm in town and he never loses in court. โ€œHe may be who I need,โ€ I murmur to myself, excitement surging within me. Once the rain stops, I begin searching for a new place to stay. With newfound determination and what little cash I have, I find refuge in a cramped flat that doesn't check documents. The landlord, a cold and distant old lady, lays down the rules; no pets allowed, no men allowed, before disappearing from my sight. In this tiny room, my troubled heart finally quiets down. For now, Iโ€™m safe, hidden from Carter's relentless pursuit. Through G****e, I search the name โ€˜Marius Thorneโ€™, and quickly call the numbers on the law firm profile heโ€™s working with. After a few rings, a female voice echoes from the other end of the line. -[โ€œCounsel Commanders Law Firm, how can we help you?โ€]- โ€œHi! Iโ€™m filing for divorce and I need to make an appointment with Marius Thorne, is he available to speak with?โ€ Chapter 5: Divorce is never as easy as I thought it would be. -[โ€œIโ€™m calling to inform you that Mr. Thorne has decided to NOT take your case. We can recommend good divorce lawyers if neededโ€ฆ.โ€]- The womanโ€™s tone is cool and reserved over the phone. Confusion clouds my thoughts, and questions race through my mindโ€”why would he turn me away? Is he busy? Or does he find my case not worthy of his time? I quickly rush to the law firm, hoping to personally meet and talk to Marius Throne, but Iโ€™m told by his secretary that appointments with Marius Throne are currently lined up for a month from now. So, heโ€™s busy. Even so,... Iโ€™m still hoping that heโ€™ll have a change of heart and accept my divorce case if only he can understand my situation. Itโ€™s a good case, hard case to be exact - my prenup agreement is harsh and my husband was caught cheating red-handed. This may pique his interest. The bustling lobby seems to shrink in an instant as I, lost in my thoughts, collide with someone in a sharp, tailored suit. I stumble back, instinctively apologizing. "Oh, I'm so sor-!" But when the man speaks, I freeze mid-apology. "Hazel?" he says, his voice a mix of surprise and recognition. My brow furrows as I stare at him, trying to place the familiar handsome face. Then, it hits me. "Leslie?!" I exclaim, my confusion giving way to excitement. "It's nice to see you again!" Leslie returns my smile, his eyes lighting up with warmth. "It's nice to see you again too." My mind trips me back to our high school days, the laughter, the secrets shared, which were overshadowed by the years of silence that followed my marriage to Carter. "Itโ€™s been a long time,โ€ I say. โ€œWhat are you doing in a place like this?" A proud smile tugs at Leslie's lips as he proudly gestures around the lobby. "I work here as a Senior Legal Associate." Senior Legal Associate? - I echo inwardly with awe. Quickly, a glimmer of possibility shines through my uncertainty! And when Leslie asks the question back to me, I know I have to seize the opportunity. โ€œHow about you, what are you doing here?โ€ In a heartbeat, I reply, "I'm divorcing my husband, and I need to talk to Attorney Thorne now. His secretary said he has many cases lined up for him. But heโ€™s my only hope. Can you help me meet him, please?" As I wait for his response, I look into his eyes, praying for a lifeline. โ€œMr. Thorne is a troublesome boss, difficult to work with, and even harder to persuade,โ€ he says. My stubbornness refuses to let doubt cloud my determination. Iโ€™m desperate. Despite the warning signs, I press on, my resolve unshaken. "Just let me talk to him. Then I'll decide whether I still want to trust my case to him or not... please?" Leslie's smile turns brittle. "Alright. I'll try to talk to him first about you. Follow me." I follow Leslie, then wait outside one of the doors that are lining the corridor as I watch him disappear into the room. I hope Leslie's charm will be enough to sway Marius Thorne, to at least grant me a chance to plead my case. And maybe, just maybe, if I can make him understand, I can turn the tide in my favor. After a moment of agony, Leslie finally emerges from the room, his smile radiant as he meets my eager gaze. โ€œYou may now go in,โ€ he announces, his voice tinged with excitement. My heart leaps with anticipation, and I can't help but squeal with delight. With a grin, I say, โ€œThank you so, so much!โ€ I waste no time in crossing the threshold into the room. As I close the door, my eyes quickly fall upon Marius Thorne behind the mahogany desk. Heโ€™s tall and heโ€™s impeccably handsome too, more so than Leslie and even Carter himself. Clad in a printed suit, he exudes an air of impassiveness that sends chills down my spine. His jawline is sharp, his gold eyes are more piercing in person than they were on TV, and his dark hair perfectly groomed. Mariusโ€™ voice is devoid of emotion just like his expression. "My secretary and Leslie told me that youโ€™re planning to divorce your husband, Carter of the Whitlock Family.โ€ Surprised, I ask, "You know my husband?" Is Marius Thorne turning me off because of my husband? He dodges my question, and delivers his verdict instead. "I have a full schedule for the rest of the year to take on new cases. I can recommend good divorce lawyers to you If you need..." Disappointment and frustration foam in my heart, my hands clenching to my sides. "Is there anything I can do to change your mind?" Marius remains unmoved. Without a tiny hint of second-thought, he crashes me with a one-word answer, โ€œNone.โ€ Pride becomes my shield from rejection. Iโ€™ve walked away from anyone where Iโ€™m unwanted. I did that from Carter and his family, from my parents, God, I can just walk away from this stranger too! With a forced smile, I turn to the door. But just as I reach the threshold, a hand grips my wrist with unexpected force. Then, Carter's angry face looms over me. I struggle to maintain my balance. "Carter, let go of me!" I demand, my voice trembling with fear and defiance. โ€œWhat do you think youโ€™re doing here?!โ€ he asks back, his face red with beasty fury. Carter drags me aggressively. I try to get rid of him, shoving my wrist from his iron grip, but his strength is overpowering. Finally, we reach the lobby, where curious eyes watch our confrontation unfold. Carter releases my wrist, but my humiliation doesn't end there. In a voice sharp and cold, he unleashes a torrent of threats that makes my blood run cold. "I own half of this law firm. When my wife came to my firm looking for a divorce lawyer, You think I wouldn't notice that?โ€”โ€”" My eyes widen in surpriseโ€ฆ thatโ€™s news to me. Carter pinches my hand and says, โ€œYou didn't really think that you could find a lawyer who would dare take you on, did you?โ€ My mind goes blank, could this be the reason why Marius Thorne kept refusing me? Is there any other divorce attorney in town who will take my case? Whoโ€™s not scared of Carter? Carter grabs my arm once again. โ€œStop defying me! You canโ€™t just waltz out of our marriage without consequences. Didnโ€™t I already make sure you know that? The hardship youโ€™re going through now is just the tip of the iceberg of what else I can do to you." I try to let go myself, but itโ€™s no use, Carter is much stronger than I am. He then tightens his grip on me, which prompts me to hiss in pain. โ€œCarter, please,โ€ I beg. Carter parts his lips, but before he can continue his tirade, a pair of hands intervenes, grasping both my arm and his. I look up, and see Marius standing before us. LEARN_MORE https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&u Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 redtgb.com IMAGE https://redtgb.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12972&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/453400738_2755180921306994_264071822780179868_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=111&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=6jyp7fkW6vcQ7kNvgErl71F&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=A3Xl0wX6IYkj5wXrjLZSaSt&oh=00_AYD8L2tglEHds95qb0ueJwxbyPmC49s80fB7MpzbP92Vug&oe=67308A5A PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,358,254
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2356895}'
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”žAttention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐Ÿ‘‰ ๐Ÿ’”My fated mate is my deceased sisterโ€™s boyfriend? The guy who accused me of killing my own sister and caused me to be tortured and shunned for 6 years? How could that be possible? LEARN_MORE https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&u Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 getokn.com DCO https://getokn.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=10745&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/452204884_1887427968431662_7184194980192007493_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=109&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=za7SHmkPPPcQ7kNvgHF_sfN&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=A3Xl0wX6IYkj5wXrjLZSaSt&oh=00_AYBKvpBbkn2KjmswB5pfkeRoqzNwqFotI-jYxMmUszaMTg&oe=67309007 PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,358,295
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357747}'
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ˜Read the next chapters๐Ÿ‘‰ Chapter 1 โ€œSir, Madam is not feeling well," the butler of the Gannon mansion reported on the phone. The man at the end of the line spoke in a nonchalant tone. "So, take her to the hospital. Iโ€™m not a doctor." The line died immediately. The butler was so pale, beads of sweat formed on his forehead. Zora relaxed her back against the sofa, feeling weak from abdominal pains. Trying to mask the pain, she asked hopefully. โ€œWhat did he say?โ€ The butler instantly put on a calm smile when he turned in her direction. โ€œMadam, sir said he will meet us at the hospital.โ€ Zoraโ€™s eyes lit up. Ezrah had not been home for almost three days, and she was missing him so much. This sickness seemed to be her lucky charm to get him to her side again. โ€œOkay. Letโ€™s go.โ€ Zoraโ€™s heart warmed at the fact that Ezrah at least cared about his child. Both of them were caught in a scandal two years ago, so getting married was the only way to curb the situation. Ezrahโ€™s stance was clear through it all. โ€œWhen everything calms down, we are getting a divorce.โ€ Zora hoped that by that time, she would have been able to melt his cold heart and make him fully hers, so her hopes were high. However, over time, she found him slowly drawing away from her, even when they worked together in the same company and shared the same bedroom. Two months ago, Ezrah returned and asked Zora for a divorce but chanced upon the test results. His expression was dark. โ€œLetโ€™s hold off on the divorce until after the child is born, but donโ€™t expect to remain Mrs. Gannon. That title belongs to somebody else, but itโ€™s definitely not you.โ€ The marriage after those words had been terrible. Ezrah barely returned home, barely got intimate with her. The only reason she still bore Mrs. Gannon was because of the child in her womb. Zora thought that his reason for being away was because of work since he was the CEO of the Gannon Group, a multibillion-dollar company where Zora also worked as an assistant manager. Unknown to Ezrah, Zora had been secretly in love with him for five years, but that drunk night at her best friend Cocoโ€™s birthday party, Zora woke up in bed with Ezrah. She decided to keep it a secret and a memory she would forever cherish when the media picked up the news. Ezrah could not allow the scandal to ruin his well-kept reputation and cause him losses, so he announced that he and Zora were already dating secretly and were soon getting married. Zora, who had been madly in love with him, was excited about the news of getting married to Ezrah. Zora hoped that with time, his heart would warm up towards her, but that did not happen. Even in her state, Ezrah hardly spent the night at home. On the way to the hospital, Zoraโ€™s phone beeped, and looking at the content, her heart dropped. Ezrah was holding the delicate hand of a beautiful woman, a proud smile on his face. The caption read, โ€˜Mr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ€™ Zoraโ€™s eyes were swollen with tears. As they dropped down her cheeks, she refused to believe it. Maybe it was photoshopped. There was never any news about Ezrah dating any woman before she had a baby for him. He never even warmed up to women. The man had long been secretive and kept his face from the media. Also, the butler Rudolph had said that Ezrah promised to meet them at the hospital, so the media must be spreading this false news to gain popularity. Even after everything, she still could not help the unease in her heart, instantly dialing his number. Despite him warning her to only communicate with him through the butler, Zora took the bull by the horn this time. Her call went through, but there was no answer. Her old self would have given up, but due to the unease in her heart because of the news, she couldnโ€™t bring herself to do so. On the fourth ring, a woman answered the call. Her melodious voice made Zora feel less of a woman. โ€œEzrah is in the bathroom.โ€ Zoraโ€™s hands holding the phone shook, her heart in tatters. Ezrah never allowed her to touch his phone, but this woman casually answered his call, and was he really in the bathroom? Zora felt the pain in her chest worse than that of her abdomen. โ€œWho are you?โ€ The words forced themselves out of her mouth. The woman responded casually, โ€œPiper, his fiancรฉe. And you are?โ€ โ€œWhatever he saved my name with,โ€ Zora responded calmly. The pain of the news was more than she could bear. Though knowing that Ezrah never loved her, she thought they could live in peace for the sake of the baby in her womb, but Ezrah never meant to make her dreams come true. The woman at the end of the line moved the phone from her ear to have a better view of the caller ID. โ€œOh, Zora. If itโ€™s urgent, I could drop a message for you when he comes out.โ€ The nights Ezrah spent away when Zora thought he was busy at work, it was a great disappointment that he was with the woman he loved, leaving her to suffer with her unborn child. She was still in her first trimester, and due to all the morning sickness and other health issues, Zora had taken a break from working at the company to recover first. Her mind lacked clarity, and she was beginning to doubt all the responses she got from Rudolph when she asked him to get in touch with Ezrah. โ€œJust tell him to call me.โ€ Zora ended the call. At the hotel room, Ezrah returned from the meeting in the conference room. Since he never allowed anyone to answer their calls during meetings, he equally left his phone in the presidential suite meant for his relaxation. โ€œWhat are you doing with my phone?โ€ He asked as soon as he entered the bedroom. Before Piper spoke, he asked again, โ€œand I made it clear that you should wait for me at the lounge. How did you have access?โ€ The pout on Piperโ€™s lips only made her cuter as she faked anger. โ€œIs it wrong for me to come? We would have gotten married if Zora had not appeared.โ€ Ezrah was a man who loved to keep his love life private. He and Piper had been in a secret long-distance relationship. The night they arranged to meet at the birthday party of one of his business partnerโ€™s sister, Piper had an emergency and could not attend as planned. That night, he mysteriously ended up in bed with Zora, an incident that should have been brushed under the carpet until the media took hold of it. Not wanting his well-maintained reputation to crack, he apologetically married Zora, promising Piper to divorce Zora secretly after two years when the news dies down. Things took a different turn when he found the test result after promising Piper that he was ending things with Zora. โ€œI told you I was working on it. You should keep yourself hidden away from the press. We shouldnโ€™t be seen together.โ€ Ezrahโ€™s voice was stern. It was business for him first, and he didnโ€™t want Piperโ€™s presence to ruin it for him. Piper was uneasy at the reminder. Forcing a smile, she relayed, โ€œI could be your confidential secretary. Please Ezrah, I donโ€™t want to be away from you anymore.โ€ Ezrah did not give a response. His actions were always well thought out. It wasnโ€™t easy for him to be the CEO of the legendary Gannon Group as the youngest of three sons. Any wrong move and his elder brothers would begin to fight for the position. โ€œDid anyone call?โ€ He was scrolling through his phone when he caught sight of Zoraโ€™s name. โ€œYeah. Zora. She said you should call her,โ€ Piper responded with a smile, her fingers sliding over her exposed thighs as she lay seductively on the luxurious king-size bed. โ€œWhat did you tell her?โ€ Ezrah frowned a little. He wanted to keep Piper a secret until after the divorce. โ€œI pretended not to know about her existence.โ€ Piper lifted herself to a sitting position, and due to the long slit of the dress, her full thighs were exposed, but Ezrahโ€™s attention was on the phone in his hand. โ€œDo me a favor and donโ€™t answer my calls again.โ€ His voice had lost its warmth. Piper faked remorse. โ€œIโ€™m sorry. I thought it was urgent.โ€ Ezrah finally held her gaze as he spoke roughly, โ€œNothing about Zora is ever urgent.โ€ Chapter 2 Piper was very happy with his remark, but Zora was still Misses Gannon, the title Piper had long coveted. How she wished that night had not happened. If only that useless man had not appeared when she was about to leave for the airport to board the private jet, she would have been the one waking up in bed with Ezrah. It pained her that it had to be that woman, Zora. โ€œEzrah, are you sure you will divorce her?โ€ Ezrah hated to be doubted. โ€œYou donโ€™t believe me? Iโ€™m only with her because sheโ€™s carrying my child. As soon as heโ€™s born, I will divorce her.โ€ Piper smiled with satisfaction, and since she had mentally stored Zora's number after answering the call, she sent the recording to her. Remembering that the butler had called Ezrah informing him that Zora was sick, she asked after deleting the audio from her phone. โ€œCan you go shopping with me? I didnโ€™t bring enough clothes.โ€ Even if Zora showed the audio to Ezrah, Piper would deny it as she had used a number Ezrah didnโ€™t know to send it. โ€œI have another meeting in two hours, so you have an hour and a half to finish shopping,โ€ Ezrah said softly. Zoraโ€™s heart tightened in her chest when she played the audio. The butler who was driving the car felt helpless, equally disappointed in his boss. Zora asked from the back seat of the luxurious car she was seated in. โ€œDid he really tell you he was coming to the hospital?โ€ The butlerโ€™s throat went dry. He always succeeded in making up excuses for his boss, but this time, everything backfired. That audio destroyed everything. โ€œIโ€™m sorry, maโ€™am. I just didnโ€™t want to see you sad.โ€ Zoraโ€™s heart twitched, a bitter smile curled the corner of her lips, feeling like a fool as tears welled up in her eyes. She was nothing to Ezrah. The little surprises sent to ignite her hope were merely prepared by the butler. No matter how hard she tried, she couldnโ€™t recover from the pain as she felt a force hit the car from the side, causing it to swerve off the road and somersault thrice. The butler was instantly unconscious. Zora felt unbearable pain, blood sputtered from her mouth and nose, then in between her thighs. No words could describe the agony as she watched the life draining out of her with intense pain settled in her abdomen. She managed to pick up her phone, which had fallen to the side from the impact, dialing her husbandโ€™s number. Unable to lift the phone to her ear, she activated the speaker. โ€œZora. Iโ€™m busy.โ€ That was what Ezrah said as soon as he answered the phone, not waiting to hear what she had to say. After all, nothing about Zora was ever urgent to him. Before she lost consciousness, she heard the laughter of a woman with the words, โ€œEzrah, I want these shoes.โ€ โ€œTry them on. If they fit, you can have them.โ€ โ€˜So, shopping with a woman is what you call busy.โ€™ That was what Zora thought before losing consciousness. Zora woke up at the hospital after hours of surgery. Her face was as pale as a ghost, her countenance pitiful. Her butler, Rudolph, sat at her hospital bed, a smile on his face. He had sustained a few injuries, but they were not serious, and he was already discharged. โ€œMadam, you are awake. Thank God.โ€ Zora was glad to see that Rudolph was fine. There were just bruises on his face. He quickly rushed out to call a doctor. โ€œMrs. Gannon, how are you feeling?โ€ The doctor asked as he examined Zora, writing a few things on a writing pad he carried along. Zora was only concerned about one thing. โ€œHow is my baby?โ€ Zora asked. The doctorโ€™s eyes dulled. โ€œIโ€™m very sorry, but your baby couldnโ€™t survive the impact.โ€ Tears brimmed in the back of Zoraโ€™s eyes, but she fought them back. She lost everything. She left her fatherโ€™s company to work for her husband, nurturing his business and enduring all the taunts of his arrogant family. At twenty-three, she had nothing to show for the man she had secretly loved for five good years. โ€œItโ€™s alright. She would have just suffered anyway.โ€ Her heart had turned cold due to the loss of the child. โ€œExcuse me?โ€ The doctor was shocked. He expected her to cry like any woman in her situation would, but Zora bottled it in. She could endure all of Ezrahโ€™s indifference towards her, but she would never forgive him for the loss of her child. That woman appeared, and Zora suddenly got involved in an accident. The case had to be investigated, but as for Ezrah, he no longer had a place in her heart. โ€œSorry, that was not directed at you.โ€ There was no warmth in Zoraโ€™s apologetic voice. The doctor forced a smile, finished his examination, and left. Zora stared at the butler at the doorway. He stood there since the doctor arrived. Zora was about to tear down but couldnโ€™t do so. She had been weak for too long, leading to the death of her child. If she had left the first time Ezrah asked her for a divorce, this would not have happened. When she discovered this baby, she decided to consent to the divorce and leave. At least, she would have his child to remind her of the relationship they once shared. Unfortunately, the test result fell from her handbag, Ezrah saw it. Even when he decided for them to wait until after she gave birth, his treatment of her was no better. โ€œWhere is Ezrah?โ€ Zora asked. Butler Rudolph was scared. He could feel the cold in Zoraโ€™s voice, and even with the distance, he could feel the chills. โ€œMadam, the man who hit us was drunk, and he died on the spot. The police are not able to contact his family either,โ€ Rudolph reported, trying to avoid answering her question. He was a middle-aged man. Zora did not believe the report but kept it to herself. The moment she discovered that the man she respected so much was lying to her, her trust in him dwindled. She will find ways to investigate the matter by herself. โ€œThat isnโ€™t my question.โ€ โ€œBoss left here a few minutes ago,โ€ Rudolph answered. Zora was enraged this time. Not only Ezrah but Rudolph, the butler Ezrah assigned to her, was equally taking her for a fool. โ€œDonโ€™t lie to my face again.โ€ Her voice was stern and full of contempt. Rudolph pursed his lips, his head lowered. โ€œBoss said, and I quote. โ€˜Itโ€™s rather unfortunate. Let the doctors take care of her. Iโ€™m very busy at the moment.โ€ Zora knew what he was busy with. It was the woman whose voice she heard in the audio. She thought she was strong enough to take it, but a tear fell from her eyes before she could stop it. Ashamed of showing her weak side in front of Rudolph, she discharged him. โ€œThank you, and please excuse me.โ€ Rudolph was never supposed to leave Zora's side, so he was reluctant. โ€œMaโ€ฆโ€ โ€œI said, excuse me, Rudolph,โ€ Zoraโ€™s voice raised, Rudolph decided to wait in front of the door. โ€œOkay.โ€ As soon as he left the ward, Zora dialed a number. โ€œSophโ€ฆโ€ โ€œDad, Iโ€™m sorry. I made a mistake, and now, I lost everything.โ€ Zora didnโ€™t hold back her tears as she spoke to her father on the phone. He was against the marriage the moment he realized that Ezrah did not feel the same way Zora felt about him, but she was optimistic, insisting that Ezrah would change. Expecting her father to scold her an, โ€˜I told you soโ€™ lecture, his voice was rather soft as he asked her. โ€œWhat happened, Zora?โ€ โ€œI had an accident and lost the baby. Iโ€™m coming home.โ€ The silence at the end of the line was deafening. She knew her father was saddened about the loss of his grandchild. When she was about to end the call, he suddenly said, โ€œOh Zora. Iโ€™m coming to get you. Just send me your location.โ€ Zora refused. She couldnโ€™t leave until she was legally separated from Ezrah. โ€œNo dad, I have a few things to do first.โ€ โ€œWhat is that? Let me help you with it?โ€ Her father eagerly said, but she was in no mood to burden the middle-aged man. The loss had caused Zora to mature so fast as the reality of life hit her. No more would she depend on anyone. It was time to do something worthwhile with her life, but first of all, she will still have to face Ezrah for the last time. โ€œDonโ€™t worry. Itโ€™s nothing I canโ€™t handle. โ€œOkay. We shall prepare your welcome party. I will inform your mom.โ€ Zora smiled and didnโ€™t refuse her fatherโ€™s kindness. Three days later, she was discharged from the hospital. As she waited for Ezrahโ€™s return, she got the divorce papers ready. It was three days later in the dead of the night when Ezrah returned, tired-looking but his attractive features remained untouched by his fatigue. Zora had lost sleep, waiting for Ezrah during most of the days. As soon as she heard the sound of the car, she quickly rushed downstairs but paused on top of the stairs when Ezrah walked through the door of the living room. Arriving home, Ezrah no longer met the woman who always met him with a smile. She stood on top of the stairs and yelled with a cold expression, โ€œGood news Ezrah! Our baby died in a car accident. There is nothing between us, so letโ€™s get a divorce.โ€ The man who was always cold to her instantly panicked. He stood momentarily frozen. Chapter 3 Ezrah was baffled by the news. Twice, he had asked her for a divorce and saw how gloomy she turned at the subject. This was what he wanted but he couldnโ€™t help the unease filling his heart. Was it because Zora was the one asking? Was she trying to mess up his reputation with the loss of the child? Ezrah was confused. Zora descended the stairs, walking to the dining table. Ezrah did not utter an acceptance or rejection of her request for a divorce and went up the stairs, returning after ten minutes in loungewear. Seemed he wasnโ€™t going out or was it the shock from the news? Seeing the dinner table hosting different delicacies, excitement filled his heart as he took a seat. If she really wanted a divorce, then she wouldnโ€™t have cooked for him. At this moment, Piper was momentarily forgotten. Ezrah avoided Zoraโ€™s gaze as this was the first time she was so cold to him. Without alerting her of his arrival, she still ensured that his supper was ready. As he uncovered one of the dishes, his eyes darkened as he glared at her. It was not the food he was expecting but rather, the cold divorce papers, with a pen beside them, waiting to be signed. โ€œWhat is this?โ€ Ezrah was furious, being famished from not having time to eat. In times past, Zora would have been worried and tried to appease him but that Zora was gone. After crying her eyes out for days, she waited to serve Ezrah these cold documents, she had no more tears to shed but her eyes were dangerously red. โ€œDo I need to get you a pair of glasses?โ€ Her voice was taunting, as she saw the shocked expression on his face. He must have taken her request as a joke the first time but the documents exposed the reality. โ€œWhy? Were you expecting me to cook when I had no idea when you will be home?โ€ Ezrahโ€™s expression was blank. She could have made the maids do it. It burned Zora that she could not read his emotions but she didnโ€™t care anymore. โ€œPlease sign the papers. In case the prints are too tiny, I got you a magnifying glass,โ€ she dropped the item in front of him. Ezrah was not irrational. When he asked for a divorce, he ensured that there would be nothing for the media to feed on but now that they just lost a child? What will people think? His parents liked Zora, except his two elder brothers who always saw her as a threat. The situation was complicated now. Ezrah never thought she would stand on it to ask for a divorce because of how she always claimed to love him, not caring if he was just cold to her. He needed time to think. โ€œWe shall talk about it later,โ€ he finally said and was about to stand up when Zora played an audio from her phone. With her mind made up, she wanted the divorce here and now. The woman in front of Ezrah was different from the one he always came home to. She always wore attractive clothes with a little makeup to seduce him which sometimes worked but after his release, Ezrah would return to being cold. Today, Zora did not have on any makeup. Her hair was not even combed. All she wore was pajamas, her long dark hair looking lifeless, in contrast to Ezrah who was looking so attractive. He had the looks and physique Zora used to die for but not anymore. All she felt for him now was resentment. She suddenly matured past looks or smartness in a man. What was there in being hot and a genius in business when there is no conscience or empathy? Zora was just seeing that the man she has always been obsessed with was a selfish monster, caring only about his own image, money, and passion. Whatever blinded her eyes before was removed the moment she woke up on that hospital bed. The voice from the audio was as clear as daylight. A female and a male but the male voice was indeed that of Ezrah. Female: Iโ€™m sorry. I thought it was urgent. Male: Nothing about Zora is ever urgent. Female: Ezrah, are you sure you will divorce her? Male: You donโ€™t believe me? Iโ€™m only with her because sheโ€™s carrying my child. As soon as heโ€™s born, I will divorce her. Zora caught an expression of guilt on his face but there was no remorse. His voice was hard. โ€œWhere did you get that?โ€ He demanded. Piper could not have done this, right? She had no contact with Zora. But it was just the two of them in the room. Were there secret cameras? Though confused, his expression returned to being blank. โ€œYou have to destroy that audio before I sign this paper,โ€ he threatened her. Zora could not tell how she managed to pretend that she was fine. Up until now, he didnโ€™t even care to apologize for sharing their private information with whatever name he calls the woman in his life. What on earth could have made her fall in love with such a man? He was different from that man from a long time ago who saved her from the pool when she was bullied by some jealous friends. Ezrah did not remember that day but that was when Zora fell in love with him. She calmly showed him another caption on her phone. โ€˜Mr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ€™ This time, Ezrah paled but his eyes were dark and he picked up his phone instantly. He couldnโ€™t find the person who took those pictures and how they went viral but had to get someone to take them down. The hacker would also be able to find out who sent that information to the press. Zora had grown thorns after listening over and over to the audio and reading that news on her phone. Ezrah had already told her the same thing so this shouldnโ€™t hurt. โ€œIt doesnโ€™t matter. The hindrance has already been removed and you already have a woman waiting for you. Just sign the freaking papers.โ€ Chapter 4 Ezrah paced back and forth elegantly, his mind filled with confusion and fear after ending the call. โ€œYou want to blackmail me? How much do you want?โ€ He was enraged and disdained that Zora would resort to such means, but he was willing to pay to prevent the audio from going viral. His parents would not hesitate to demote him despite his hard work in the company, while his lazy elder brothers would benefit without putting in the effort. โ€œWhat I want, you already gave, but since the accident took it away, there is nothing you can give me.โ€ She did not disclose her suspicions, as she had someone investigating the matter. Ezrah suddenly laughed mockingly. โ€œYour fatherโ€™s company is not as strong as you think. He has been seeking an alliance with me. You want fifty percent of my hard work.โ€ This could be the reason Zora was pushing for the divorce. Fifty percent from the Gannon Group would elevate her family business to new heights. She felt bitter that he would think so poorly of her. Despite her feelings, she kept her composure. โ€œNo. You were the one who proposed the divorce, so were you planning to leave me with nothing?โ€ Her question left him speechless, and she reminded him of the prenup agreement. โ€œDid you forget that I signed a prenup before marrying you? I just refreshed your memory so you are free to sign.โ€ Ezrah recalled that Zora had willingly proposed and prepared the prenup when they announced their marriage after the scandal. She did it all to prove to him that she wasnโ€™t โ€˜interested in his wealth. He suddenly felt uneasy. This was not the scenario he had anticipated when he entered the room. Besides, he was hungry and not in the right state to make such a decision. What if Zora was being supported by one of his brothers or both? โ€œYou may have dismissed it, but it's only a matter of time before you reveal that you left with nothing.โ€ Zora struggled to suppress the pain that came with realizing that Ezrah's delay in finalizing the divorce was not due to developing feelings for her or guilt, but rather to protect his image in front of the media and family. She felt a bitter smile form on her lips. โ€œTrust me, nothing about our divorce will be leaked to the media.โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t believe you,โ€ Ezrah responded bluntly. Zora had worked closely with him, and despite her absence from the office in recent weeks, she was privy to confidential information. Ezrah had never seen her as a threat due to her infatuation with him, but now he feared she might make his life difficult. โ€œAs soon as the papers are signed, you wonโ€™t hear from me again. You can have a happy life with the woman you love,โ€ Zora proposed. Ezrah was already contemplating how he could benefit from her disappearance after the divorce. It seemed like she wanted to start fresh somewhere far away. โ€œAlright. Iโ€™m not heartless. I will still give you 50 million,โ€ he said as he signed the document, only to find that Zora had already signed her part. After signing the divorce agreement, Ezrahโ€™s phone rang. Seeing it was Piper, he answered it and began to climb the stairs in long strides. Piper keeps breaking the agreement. She wasnโ€™t supposed to call him when she was home. Zora overheard him on the phone, โ€œAre you the one who recorded our conversation at the hotel?โ€ She couldnโ€™t hear Piperโ€™s response but had the conviction that it was her. Deciding it was best to spend the night on the sofa, Zora couldn't fathom sharing a room with him after their divorce. She was too exhausted to move to another room. Her sleep was restless, prompting her to wake up before Ezrah. She had already packed her bags, so she dressed and approached him. โ€œEzrah, itโ€™s time to finalize our divorce in court.โ€ Ezrah woke up and looked at her glumly. She was still in a somber mood, her eyes red despite the makeup. He sighed, โ€œjust a few minutes.โ€ An hour later, they arrived at the divorce court. With Zora having made prior arrangements, the process was swift, and they soon had their divorce certificates. Without hesitation, they signed their respective portions. โ€œYou should keep your word and leave New York for good, or else you wonโ€™t like what I will do,โ€ Ezrah warned solemnly. Zora had a faint smile on her face. โ€œI have a gift waiting for you at home.โ€ Ezrah frowned, wondering what kind of gift she arranged for him after their divorce. Zora has always been generous, buying him gifts and anything she knew he would like. He would neither accept nor refuse them. Whereas, he never used any of the gifts she bought for him. They left together, but Zora departed in a cab against his wishes to drop her at the airport. She reiterated that he would never see her again. Ezrah felt conflicted but remembered his promise to Piper. Despite his desire to head straight to the office for a meeting, curiosity got the best of him. He rescheduled the meeting and drove home to see the gift Zora had left for him. Upon arriving, he found a letter on the dining table addressed to him. โ€˜EZRAH.โ€™ He couldn't recall seeing it earlier that morning, and a sense of unease crept over him as he approached and opened the letter. It was written in Zoraโ€™s handwriting, unmistakable to him. As he read the words, fear, panic, and regret flooded his heart. The letter slipped from his trembling fingers as he cried out, โ€œZORA, WHAT HAVE YOU DONE?โ€ LEARN_MORE https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&u Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 shgjfh.com IMAGE https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/454675414_1627837628036804_2713308018303093316_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=106&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=7Aa-sLmWSPgQ7kNvgH6813M&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=A8IPBNzvQRRdmP-z8wv84oc&oh=00_AYBjx3vyfQY2fcS2iMW_omXBQfH-ZMcFsI5MSKrfxI4hRw&oe=673092EC PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,358,296
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357747}'
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ˜Read the next chapters๐Ÿ‘‰ Chapter 1 โ€œSir, Madam is not feeling well," the butler of the Gannon mansion reported on the phone. The man at the end of the line spoke in a nonchalant tone. "So, take her to the hospital. Iโ€™m not a doctor." The line died immediately. The butler was so pale, beads of sweat formed on his forehead. Zora relaxed her back against the sofa, feeling weak from abdominal pains. Trying to mask the pain, she asked hopefully. โ€œWhat did he say?โ€ The butler instantly put on a calm smile when he turned in her direction. โ€œMadam, sir said he will meet us at the hospital.โ€ Zoraโ€™s eyes lit up. Ezrah had not been home for almost three days, and she was missing him so much. This sickness seemed to be her lucky charm to get him to her side again. โ€œOkay. Letโ€™s go.โ€ Zoraโ€™s heart warmed at the fact that Ezrah at least cared about his child. Both of them were caught in a scandal two years ago, so getting married was the only way to curb the situation. Ezrahโ€™s stance was clear through it all. โ€œWhen everything calms down, we are getting a divorce.โ€ Zora hoped that by that time, she would have been able to melt his cold heart and make him fully hers, so her hopes were high. However, over time, she found him slowly drawing away from her, even when they worked together in the same company and shared the same bedroom. Two months ago, Ezrah returned and asked Zora for a divorce but chanced upon the test results. His expression was dark. โ€œLetโ€™s hold off on the divorce until after the child is born, but donโ€™t expect to remain Mrs. Gannon. That title belongs to somebody else, but itโ€™s definitely not you.โ€ The marriage after those words had been terrible. Ezrah barely returned home, barely got intimate with her. The only reason she still bore Mrs. Gannon was because of the child in her womb. Zora thought that his reason for being away was because of work since he was the CEO of the Gannon Group, a multibillion-dollar company where Zora also worked as an assistant manager. Unknown to Ezrah, Zora had been secretly in love with him for five years, but that drunk night at her best friend Cocoโ€™s birthday party, Zora woke up in bed with Ezrah. She decided to keep it a secret and a memory she would forever cherish when the media picked up the news. Ezrah could not allow the scandal to ruin his well-kept reputation and cause him losses, so he announced that he and Zora were already dating secretly and were soon getting married. Zora, who had been madly in love with him, was excited about the news of getting married to Ezrah. Zora hoped that with time, his heart would warm up towards her, but that did not happen. Even in her state, Ezrah hardly spent the night at home. On the way to the hospital, Zoraโ€™s phone beeped, and looking at the content, her heart dropped. Ezrah was holding the delicate hand of a beautiful woman, a proud smile on his face. The caption read, โ€˜Mr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ€™ Zoraโ€™s eyes were swollen with tears. As they dropped down her cheeks, she refused to believe it. Maybe it was photoshopped. There was never any news about Ezrah dating any woman before she had a baby for him. He never even warmed up to women. The man had long been secretive and kept his face from the media. Also, the butler Rudolph had said that Ezrah promised to meet them at the hospital, so the media must be spreading this false news to gain popularity. Even after everything, she still could not help the unease in her heart, instantly dialing his number. Despite him warning her to only communicate with him through the butler, Zora took the bull by the horn this time. Her call went through, but there was no answer. Her old self would have given up, but due to the unease in her heart because of the news, she couldnโ€™t bring herself to do so. On the fourth ring, a woman answered the call. Her melodious voice made Zora feel less of a woman. โ€œEzrah is in the bathroom.โ€ Zoraโ€™s hands holding the phone shook, her heart in tatters. Ezrah never allowed her to touch his phone, but this woman casually answered his call, and was he really in the bathroom? Zora felt the pain in her chest worse than that of her abdomen. โ€œWho are you?โ€ The words forced themselves out of her mouth. The woman responded casually, โ€œPiper, his fiancรฉe. And you are?โ€ โ€œWhatever he saved my name with,โ€ Zora responded calmly. The pain of the news was more than she could bear. Though knowing that Ezrah never loved her, she thought they could live in peace for the sake of the baby in her womb, but Ezrah never meant to make her dreams come true. The woman at the end of the line moved the phone from her ear to have a better view of the caller ID. โ€œOh, Zora. If itโ€™s urgent, I could drop a message for you when he comes out.โ€ The nights Ezrah spent away when Zora thought he was busy at work, it was a great disappointment that he was with the woman he loved, leaving her to suffer with her unborn child. She was still in her first trimester, and due to all the morning sickness and other health issues, Zora had taken a break from working at the company to recover first. Her mind lacked clarity, and she was beginning to doubt all the responses she got from Rudolph when she asked him to get in touch with Ezrah. โ€œJust tell him to call me.โ€ Zora ended the call. At the hotel room, Ezrah returned from the meeting in the conference room. Since he never allowed anyone to answer their calls during meetings, he equally left his phone in the presidential suite meant for his relaxation. โ€œWhat are you doing with my phone?โ€ He asked as soon as he entered the bedroom. Before Piper spoke, he asked again, โ€œand I made it clear that you should wait for me at the lounge. How did you have access?โ€ The pout on Piperโ€™s lips only made her cuter as she faked anger. โ€œIs it wrong for me to come? We would have gotten married if Zora had not appeared.โ€ Ezrah was a man who loved to keep his love life private. He and Piper had been in a secret long-distance relationship. The night they arranged to meet at the birthday party of one of his business partnerโ€™s sister, Piper had an emergency and could not attend as planned. That night, he mysteriously ended up in bed with Zora, an incident that should have been brushed under the carpet until the media took hold of it. Not wanting his well-maintained reputation to crack, he apologetically married Zora, promising Piper to divorce Zora secretly after two years when the news dies down. Things took a different turn when he found the test result after promising Piper that he was ending things with Zora. โ€œI told you I was working on it. You should keep yourself hidden away from the press. We shouldnโ€™t be seen together.โ€ Ezrahโ€™s voice was stern. It was business for him first, and he didnโ€™t want Piperโ€™s presence to ruin it for him. Piper was uneasy at the reminder. Forcing a smile, she relayed, โ€œI could be your confidential secretary. Please Ezrah, I donโ€™t want to be away from you anymore.โ€ Ezrah did not give a response. His actions were always well thought out. It wasnโ€™t easy for him to be the CEO of the legendary Gannon Group as the youngest of three sons. Any wrong move and his elder brothers would begin to fight for the position. โ€œDid anyone call?โ€ He was scrolling through his phone when he caught sight of Zoraโ€™s name. โ€œYeah. Zora. She said you should call her,โ€ Piper responded with a smile, her fingers sliding over her exposed thighs as she lay seductively on the luxurious king-size bed. โ€œWhat did you tell her?โ€ Ezrah frowned a little. He wanted to keep Piper a secret until after the divorce. โ€œI pretended not to know about her existence.โ€ Piper lifted herself to a sitting position, and due to the long slit of the dress, her full thighs were exposed, but Ezrahโ€™s attention was on the phone in his hand. โ€œDo me a favor and donโ€™t answer my calls again.โ€ His voice had lost its warmth. Piper faked remorse. โ€œIโ€™m sorry. I thought it was urgent.โ€ Ezrah finally held her gaze as he spoke roughly, โ€œNothing about Zora is ever urgent.โ€ Chapter 2 Piper was very happy with his remark, but Zora was still Misses Gannon, the title Piper had long coveted. How she wished that night had not happened. If only that useless man had not appeared when she was about to leave for the airport to board the private jet, she would have been the one waking up in bed with Ezrah. It pained her that it had to be that woman, Zora. โ€œEzrah, are you sure you will divorce her?โ€ Ezrah hated to be doubted. โ€œYou donโ€™t believe me? Iโ€™m only with her because sheโ€™s carrying my child. As soon as heโ€™s born, I will divorce her.โ€ Piper smiled with satisfaction, and since she had mentally stored Zora's number after answering the call, she sent the recording to her. Remembering that the butler had called Ezrah informing him that Zora was sick, she asked after deleting the audio from her phone. โ€œCan you go shopping with me? I didnโ€™t bring enough clothes.โ€ Even if Zora showed the audio to Ezrah, Piper would deny it as she had used a number Ezrah didnโ€™t know to send it. โ€œI have another meeting in two hours, so you have an hour and a half to finish shopping,โ€ Ezrah said softly. Zoraโ€™s heart tightened in her chest when she played the audio. The butler who was driving the car felt helpless, equally disappointed in his boss. Zora asked from the back seat of the luxurious car she was seated in. โ€œDid he really tell you he was coming to the hospital?โ€ The butlerโ€™s throat went dry. He always succeeded in making up excuses for his boss, but this time, everything backfired. That audio destroyed everything. โ€œIโ€™m sorry, maโ€™am. I just didnโ€™t want to see you sad.โ€ Zoraโ€™s heart twitched, a bitter smile curled the corner of her lips, feeling like a fool as tears welled up in her eyes. She was nothing to Ezrah. The little surprises sent to ignite her hope were merely prepared by the butler. No matter how hard she tried, she couldnโ€™t recover from the pain as she felt a force hit the car from the side, causing it to swerve off the road and somersault thrice. The butler was instantly unconscious. Zora felt unbearable pain, blood sputtered from her mouth and nose, then in between her thighs. No words could describe the agony as she watched the life draining out of her with intense pain settled in her abdomen. She managed to pick up her phone, which had fallen to the side from the impact, dialing her husbandโ€™s number. Unable to lift the phone to her ear, she activated the speaker. โ€œZora. Iโ€™m busy.โ€ That was what Ezrah said as soon as he answered the phone, not waiting to hear what she had to say. After all, nothing about Zora was ever urgent to him. Before she lost consciousness, she heard the laughter of a woman with the words, โ€œEzrah, I want these shoes.โ€ โ€œTry them on. If they fit, you can have them.โ€ โ€˜So, shopping with a woman is what you call busy.โ€™ That was what Zora thought before losing consciousness. Zora woke up at the hospital after hours of surgery. Her face was as pale as a ghost, her countenance pitiful. Her butler, Rudolph, sat at her hospital bed, a smile on his face. He had sustained a few injuries, but they were not serious, and he was already discharged. โ€œMadam, you are awake. Thank God.โ€ Zora was glad to see that Rudolph was fine. There were just bruises on his face. He quickly rushed out to call a doctor. โ€œMrs. Gannon, how are you feeling?โ€ The doctor asked as he examined Zora, writing a few things on a writing pad he carried along. Zora was only concerned about one thing. โ€œHow is my baby?โ€ Zora asked. The doctorโ€™s eyes dulled. โ€œIโ€™m very sorry, but your baby couldnโ€™t survive the impact.โ€ Tears brimmed in the back of Zoraโ€™s eyes, but she fought them back. She lost everything. She left her fatherโ€™s company to work for her husband, nurturing his business and enduring all the taunts of his arrogant family. At twenty-three, she had nothing to show for the man she had secretly loved for five good years. โ€œItโ€™s alright. She would have just suffered anyway.โ€ Her heart had turned cold due to the loss of the child. โ€œExcuse me?โ€ The doctor was shocked. He expected her to cry like any woman in her situation would, but Zora bottled it in. She could endure all of Ezrahโ€™s indifference towards her, but she would never forgive him for the loss of her child. That woman appeared, and Zora suddenly got involved in an accident. The case had to be investigated, but as for Ezrah, he no longer had a place in her heart. โ€œSorry, that was not directed at you.โ€ There was no warmth in Zoraโ€™s apologetic voice. The doctor forced a smile, finished his examination, and left. Zora stared at the butler at the doorway. He stood there since the doctor arrived. Zora was about to tear down but couldnโ€™t do so. She had been weak for too long, leading to the death of her child. If she had left the first time Ezrah asked her for a divorce, this would not have happened. When she discovered this baby, she decided to consent to the divorce and leave. At least, she would have his child to remind her of the relationship they once shared. Unfortunately, the test result fell from her handbag, Ezrah saw it. Even when he decided for them to wait until after she gave birth, his treatment of her was no better. โ€œWhere is Ezrah?โ€ Zora asked. Butler Rudolph was scared. He could feel the cold in Zoraโ€™s voice, and even with the distance, he could feel the chills. โ€œMadam, the man who hit us was drunk, and he died on the spot. The police are not able to contact his family either,โ€ Rudolph reported, trying to avoid answering her question. He was a middle-aged man. Zora did not believe the report but kept it to herself. The moment she discovered that the man she respected so much was lying to her, her trust in him dwindled. She will find ways to investigate the matter by herself. โ€œThat isnโ€™t my question.โ€ โ€œBoss left here a few minutes ago,โ€ Rudolph answered. Zora was enraged this time. Not only Ezrah but Rudolph, the butler Ezrah assigned to her, was equally taking her for a fool. โ€œDonโ€™t lie to my face again.โ€ Her voice was stern and full of contempt. Rudolph pursed his lips, his head lowered. โ€œBoss said, and I quote. โ€˜Itโ€™s rather unfortunate. Let the doctors take care of her. Iโ€™m very busy at the moment.โ€ Zora knew what he was busy with. It was the woman whose voice she heard in the audio. She thought she was strong enough to take it, but a tear fell from her eyes before she could stop it. Ashamed of showing her weak side in front of Rudolph, she discharged him. โ€œThank you, and please excuse me.โ€ Rudolph was never supposed to leave Zora's side, so he was reluctant. โ€œMaโ€ฆโ€ โ€œI said, excuse me, Rudolph,โ€ Zoraโ€™s voice raised, Rudolph decided to wait in front of the door. โ€œOkay.โ€ As soon as he left the ward, Zora dialed a number. โ€œSophโ€ฆโ€ โ€œDad, Iโ€™m sorry. I made a mistake, and now, I lost everything.โ€ Zora didnโ€™t hold back her tears as she spoke to her father on the phone. He was against the marriage the moment he realized that Ezrah did not feel the same way Zora felt about him, but she was optimistic, insisting that Ezrah would change. Expecting her father to scold her an, โ€˜I told you soโ€™ lecture, his voice was rather soft as he asked her. โ€œWhat happened, Zora?โ€ โ€œI had an accident and lost the baby. Iโ€™m coming home.โ€ The silence at the end of the line was deafening. She knew her father was saddened about the loss of his grandchild. When she was about to end the call, he suddenly said, โ€œOh Zora. Iโ€™m coming to get you. Just send me your location.โ€ Zora refused. She couldnโ€™t leave until she was legally separated from Ezrah. โ€œNo dad, I have a few things to do first.โ€ โ€œWhat is that? Let me help you with it?โ€ Her father eagerly said, but she was in no mood to burden the middle-aged man. The loss had caused Zora to mature so fast as the reality of life hit her. No more would she depend on anyone. It was time to do something worthwhile with her life, but first of all, she will still have to face Ezrah for the last time. โ€œDonโ€™t worry. Itโ€™s nothing I canโ€™t handle. โ€œOkay. We shall prepare your welcome party. I will inform your mom.โ€ Zora smiled and didnโ€™t refuse her fatherโ€™s kindness. Three days later, she was discharged from the hospital. As she waited for Ezrahโ€™s return, she got the divorce papers ready. It was three days later in the dead of the night when Ezrah returned, tired-looking but his attractive features remained untouched by his fatigue. Zora had lost sleep, waiting for Ezrah during most of the days. As soon as she heard the sound of the car, she quickly rushed downstairs but paused on top of the stairs when Ezrah walked through the door of the living room. Arriving home, Ezrah no longer met the woman who always met him with a smile. She stood on top of the stairs and yelled with a cold expression, โ€œGood news Ezrah! Our baby died in a car accident. There is nothing between us, so letโ€™s get a divorce.โ€ The man who was always cold to her instantly panicked. He stood momentarily frozen. Chapter 3 Ezrah was baffled by the news. Twice, he had asked her for a divorce and saw how gloomy she turned at the subject. This was what he wanted but he couldnโ€™t help the unease filling his heart. Was it because Zora was the one asking? Was she trying to mess up his reputation with the loss of the child? Ezrah was confused. Zora descended the stairs, walking to the dining table. Ezrah did not utter an acceptance or rejection of her request for a divorce and went up the stairs, returning after ten minutes in loungewear. Seemed he wasnโ€™t going out or was it the shock from the news? Seeing the dinner table hosting different delicacies, excitement filled his heart as he took a seat. If she really wanted a divorce, then she wouldnโ€™t have cooked for him. At this moment, Piper was momentarily forgotten. Ezrah avoided Zoraโ€™s gaze as this was the first time she was so cold to him. Without alerting her of his arrival, she still ensured that his supper was ready. As he uncovered one of the dishes, his eyes darkened as he glared at her. It was not the food he was expecting but rather, the cold divorce papers, with a pen beside them, waiting to be signed. โ€œWhat is this?โ€ Ezrah was furious, being famished from not having time to eat. In times past, Zora would have been worried and tried to appease him but that Zora was gone. After crying her eyes out for days, she waited to serve Ezrah these cold documents, she had no more tears to shed but her eyes were dangerously red. โ€œDo I need to get you a pair of glasses?โ€ Her voice was taunting, as she saw the shocked expression on his face. He must have taken her request as a joke the first time but the documents exposed the reality. โ€œWhy? Were you expecting me to cook when I had no idea when you will be home?โ€ Ezrahโ€™s expression was blank. She could have made the maids do it. It burned Zora that she could not read his emotions but she didnโ€™t care anymore. โ€œPlease sign the papers. In case the prints are too tiny, I got you a magnifying glass,โ€ she dropped the item in front of him. Ezrah was not irrational. When he asked for a divorce, he ensured that there would be nothing for the media to feed on but now that they just lost a child? What will people think? His parents liked Zora, except his two elder brothers who always saw her as a threat. The situation was complicated now. Ezrah never thought she would stand on it to ask for a divorce because of how she always claimed to love him, not caring if he was just cold to her. He needed time to think. โ€œWe shall talk about it later,โ€ he finally said and was about to stand up when Zora played an audio from her phone. With her mind made up, she wanted the divorce here and now. The woman in front of Ezrah was different from the one he always came home to. She always wore attractive clothes with a little makeup to seduce him which sometimes worked but after his release, Ezrah would return to being cold. Today, Zora did not have on any makeup. Her hair was not even combed. All she wore was pajamas, her long dark hair looking lifeless, in contrast to Ezrah who was looking so attractive. He had the looks and physique Zora used to die for but not anymore. All she felt for him now was resentment. She suddenly matured past looks or smartness in a man. What was there in being hot and a genius in business when there is no conscience or empathy? Zora was just seeing that the man she has always been obsessed with was a selfish monster, caring only about his own image, money, and passion. Whatever blinded her eyes before was removed the moment she woke up on that hospital bed. The voice from the audio was as clear as daylight. A female and a male but the male voice was indeed that of Ezrah. Female: Iโ€™m sorry. I thought it was urgent. Male: Nothing about Zora is ever urgent. Female: Ezrah, are you sure you will divorce her? Male: You donโ€™t believe me? Iโ€™m only with her because sheโ€™s carrying my child. As soon as heโ€™s born, I will divorce her. Zora caught an expression of guilt on his face but there was no remorse. His voice was hard. โ€œWhere did you get that?โ€ He demanded. Piper could not have done this, right? She had no contact with Zora. But it was just the two of them in the room. Were there secret cameras? Though confused, his expression returned to being blank. โ€œYou have to destroy that audio before I sign this paper,โ€ he threatened her. Zora could not tell how she managed to pretend that she was fine. Up until now, he didnโ€™t even care to apologize for sharing their private information with whatever name he calls the woman in his life. What on earth could have made her fall in love with such a man? He was different from that man from a long time ago who saved her from the pool when she was bullied by some jealous friends. Ezrah did not remember that day but that was when Zora fell in love with him. She calmly showed him another caption on her phone. โ€˜Mr. Ezra Gannon admits to reigniting his love for his old flame, Miss Piper Henshaw.โ€™ This time, Ezrah paled but his eyes were dark and he picked up his phone instantly. He couldnโ€™t find the person who took those pictures and how they went viral but had to get someone to take them down. The hacker would also be able to find out who sent that information to the press. Zora had grown thorns after listening over and over to the audio and reading that news on her phone. Ezrah had already told her the same thing so this shouldnโ€™t hurt. โ€œIt doesnโ€™t matter. The hindrance has already been removed and you already have a woman waiting for you. Just sign the freaking papers.โ€ Chapter 4 Ezrah paced back and forth elegantly, his mind filled with confusion and fear after ending the call. โ€œYou want to blackmail me? How much do you want?โ€ He was enraged and disdained that Zora would resort to such means, but he was willing to pay to prevent the audio from going viral. His parents would not hesitate to demote him despite his hard work in the company, while his lazy elder brothers would benefit without putting in the effort. โ€œWhat I want, you already gave, but since the accident took it away, there is nothing you can give me.โ€ She did not disclose her suspicions, as she had someone investigating the matter. Ezrah suddenly laughed mockingly. โ€œYour fatherโ€™s company is not as strong as you think. He has been seeking an alliance with me. You want fifty percent of my hard work.โ€ This could be the reason Zora was pushing for the divorce. Fifty percent from the Gannon Group would elevate her family business to new heights. She felt bitter that he would think so poorly of her. Despite her feelings, she kept her composure. โ€œNo. You were the one who proposed the divorce, so were you planning to leave me with nothing?โ€ Her question left him speechless, and she reminded him of the prenup agreement. โ€œDid you forget that I signed a prenup before marrying you? I just refreshed your memory so you are free to sign.โ€ Ezrah recalled that Zora had willingly proposed and prepared the prenup when they announced their marriage after the scandal. She did it all to prove to him that she wasnโ€™t โ€˜interested in his wealth. He suddenly felt uneasy. This was not the scenario he had anticipated when he entered the room. Besides, he was hungry and not in the right state to make such a decision. What if Zora was being supported by one of his brothers or both? โ€œYou may have dismissed it, but it's only a matter of time before you reveal that you left with nothing.โ€ Zora struggled to suppress the pain that came with realizing that Ezrah's delay in finalizing the divorce was not due to developing feelings for her or guilt, but rather to protect his image in front of the media and family. She felt a bitter smile form on her lips. โ€œTrust me, nothing about our divorce will be leaked to the media.โ€ โ€œI donโ€™t believe you,โ€ Ezrah responded bluntly. Zora had worked closely with him, and despite her absence from the office in recent weeks, she was privy to confidential information. Ezrah had never seen her as a threat due to her infatuation with him, but now he feared she might make his life difficult. โ€œAs soon as the papers are signed, you wonโ€™t hear from me again. You can have a happy life with the woman you love,โ€ Zora proposed. Ezrah was already contemplating how he could benefit from her disappearance after the divorce. It seemed like she wanted to start fresh somewhere far away. โ€œAlright. Iโ€™m not heartless. I will still give you 50 million,โ€ he said as he signed the document, only to find that Zora had already signed her part. After signing the divorce agreement, Ezrahโ€™s phone rang. Seeing it was Piper, he answered it and began to climb the stairs in long strides. Piper keeps breaking the agreement. She wasnโ€™t supposed to call him when she was home. Zora overheard him on the phone, โ€œAre you the one who recorded our conversation at the hotel?โ€ She couldnโ€™t hear Piperโ€™s response but had the conviction that it was her. Deciding it was best to spend the night on the sofa, Zora couldn't fathom sharing a room with him after their divorce. She was too exhausted to move to another room. Her sleep was restless, prompting her to wake up before Ezrah. She had already packed her bags, so she dressed and approached him. โ€œEzrah, itโ€™s time to finalize our divorce in court.โ€ Ezrah woke up and looked at her glumly. She was still in a somber mood, her eyes red despite the makeup. He sighed, โ€œjust a few minutes.โ€ An hour later, they arrived at the divorce court. With Zora having made prior arrangements, the process was swift, and they soon had their divorce certificates. Without hesitation, they signed their respective portions. โ€œYou should keep your word and leave New York for good, or else you wonโ€™t like what I will do,โ€ Ezrah warned solemnly. Zora had a faint smile on her face. โ€œI have a gift waiting for you at home.โ€ Ezrah frowned, wondering what kind of gift she arranged for him after their divorce. Zora has always been generous, buying him gifts and anything she knew he would like. He would neither accept nor refuse them. Whereas, he never used any of the gifts she bought for him. They left together, but Zora departed in a cab against his wishes to drop her at the airport. She reiterated that he would never see her again. Ezrah felt conflicted but remembered his promise to Piper. Despite his desire to head straight to the office for a meeting, curiosity got the best of him. He rescheduled the meeting and drove home to see the gift Zora had left for him. Upon arriving, he found a letter on the dining table addressed to him. โ€˜EZRAH.โ€™ He couldn't recall seeing it earlier that morning, and a sense of unease crept over him as he approached and opened the letter. It was written in Zoraโ€™s handwriting, unmistakable to him. As he read the words, fear, panic, and regret flooded his heart. The letter slipped from his trembling fingers as he cried out, โ€œZORA, WHAT HAVE YOU DONE?โ€ LEARN_MORE https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&u Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 shgjfh.com VIDEO https://shgjfh.com/market/goodnovel/1?lpid=13232&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/455710243_1498803557665643_7503646180620088054_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=108&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=-_LMf9e2hhEQ7kNvgFVZIir&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A8IPBNzvQRRdmP-z8wv84oc&oh=00_AYCX_prT1GXG4Wg7VljDtSnkxweekPhG-x-W02O9udZzvQ&oe=673079C4 PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,358,298
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357752}'
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”ฅ๐Ÿ”ฅClick to read the next chapter for free๐Ÿ‘‰ Two years of marriage, and I'd never set foot in my husband Elijah's office. Today was the first time I went to his company. After all this time, why was I suddenly entrusted to deliver these important documents? Could it be possible that theyโ€™re finally learning to accept me? Taking a deep breath, I gently placed my hand on my stomach. The emptiness from losing my baby lingered, even though it had been a long time since that accident. I still felt lost and fragile, wishing for solace that never came. I missed my husband's presence, longing for a comforting word or touch. But he and his family remained distant and uninvolved, leaving me to recover on my own. Now, I was about to step into Elijahโ€™s world โ€” his beloved company. My heart skipped a beat as I entered Elijah's large, elegant office. The room was tastefully decorated, with rich mahogany furniture and a large sign that said Sinclair Realty Group. But what made me stop in my tracks was the sight of my husband huddled with an attractive blonde over some papers. Their shoulders were touching, their cheeks almost brushing against each other. What is going on? I thought in alarm. Suddenly, the woman whispered something in Elijahโ€™s ear while she gently laid her perfectly manicured hands on his arm. My heart jumped. I heard a loud thud on the floor and realized Iโ€™d dropped the folder I was holding. They both looked up, startled. And thatโ€™s when my gaze locked with that of the woman. I felt a shudder creeping through my skin. Serena Foster! She used to be a classmate of ours at Fairview University. She also happened to be Elijahโ€™s ex-girlfriend. The realization hit me like a ton of bricks. So this is why my evil mother-in-law asked me to deliver this document! Morgana had probably known that Serena was here now. My husband rose from his chair, abruptly pulling away from Serena who was throwing me daggers with her eyes. โ€œYou remember Serena, right? She works here now.โ€ I nodded, my heart leaping into my throat and my thoughts raging in a storm. Theyโ€™re just colleagues, nothing else, I thought, but not with full conviction. Elijah wouldnโ€™t cheat on me, would he? All this time, Iโ€™d remained hopeful that he could still fall in love with me. But now, with Serena in the picture, time might just be running out for us. โ€œSo why are you here?โ€ Elijah asked, a frown creasing his brow. โ€œYour mom asked me to deliver this,โ€ I explained, hastily picking up the folder and handing it to him. Then narrowing my eyes at Serena, I waited for him to explain why they were working closely, or to at least introduce me as his wife. But much to my dismay, he didnโ€™t. It felt as though my heart was being squeezed tightly, as it dawned on me that heโ€™d never really introduced me to anyone as his wife. Ever. โ€œSophia, you look shaken up. Didnโ€™t you know Elijah hired me to work here?โ€ Her voice dripped with sarcasm. โ€œApparently, we make a great team. Funny, I donโ€™t recall seeing you here before.โ€ She was purposely rubbing it in my face, and I wanted to slap that smile away from her face. She then added, โ€œOh, right, you donโ€™t know anything about business. You might just mess things up.โ€ โ€œI take care of our home,โ€ I said bitterly, looking down on the floor for a bit. I felt belittled, and my husband couldnโ€™t even defend me. Serena looked at me with disbelief and laughed. Just then, Elijah said, โ€œNext time, Sophia, just contact me and Iโ€™ll have my assistant come over.โ€ "Fine," I murmured, my voice barely audible, wishing the ground would swallow me up. The weight of hurt and embarrassment pressed down on me, crushing my spirit. My heart thudded as I blinked back tears. He doesn't want me here. Suddenly, Elijahโ€™s secretary came in. โ€œAlice, please prepare coffee for the ladies,โ€ he instructed. โ€œJust black for Serena. No sugar.โ€ Serenaโ€™s eyes lit up. โ€œHey, you remembered!โ€ she exclaimed, obviously delighted. Elijah nodded at her. โ€œOf course.โ€ I watched the exchange with a sinking feeling in my heart. Serena gave me a smug look as if she was reveling in some secret victory. I couldnโ€™t help but feel more depressed. Here was my husband, effortlessly remembering Serena's coffee preferences, yet he couldn't recall something as simple as my allergy to caffeine. โ€œJoin us, Sophia,โ€ Serena invited with a devilish grin. โ€œJust like how we used to hang out together in college.โ€ I struggled to contain my emotions, not wanting to break down in front of them. โ€œI have to go,โ€ I managed to say, my voice slightly cracking. โ€œIโ€™ll see you at home.โ€ Elijahโ€™s expression remained unchanged, and my heart felt heavy with the realization of how little I meant to him. The way he treated me had only gotten worse after losing my baby. What did you expect? a small voice hissed in my head. He only married you because he got you to have a baby. Youโ€™re the one who keeps hoping heโ€™ll eventually fall for you. As his assistant Connor Hayes drove me home, I thought about how my husbandโ€™s mother Morgana had begun ignoring me after I lost the baby. Then one day, she started talking to me again, only to treat me like a housemaid. I fought back tears as the heaviness in my heart escalated. My marriage was falling apart so fast that I couldnโ€™t seem to catch up. When we pulled up the spacious driveway of the Sinclair mansion, a feeling of dread and loneliness engulfed me. Iโ€™m back in this prison. Trapped. Helpless. I want to escape this prison! I screamed in my head, glad that Morgana was nowhere to be found. Yet. Running to my room and throwing myself on my bed, sobs wracked my body. And as I cried my eyes out, I felt something with my hand that made me sit up. A small portion of a brown envelope was peeking from under the pillow. My heart tightened, and more tears filled my eyes. I knew exactly what it contained โ€” the papers Iโ€™d prepared before. I pulled them out and stared at the title that blurred before my teary eyes. It read: Divorce Agreement. CHAPTER 2 The divorce agreement was written after I accidentally lost my baby. During that time, I couldnโ€™t even look at Elijahโ€™s face without thinking about our baby. The pain was unbearable, so I believed divorce was my salvation. Looking back, preparing the divorce agreement was not a mistake, now that leaving was my only option. My hands shook as I held the papers in my hand. I could hear Morganaโ€™s voice outside. โ€œSophia!โ€ she called in a sharp tone. She probably heard me come in and was now wondering where I was. Quickly, I hid the divorce agreement and washed my face in the bathroom. Thatโ€™s when the door swung open. I dried my face with a towel and looked at my mother-in-law. She responded with a cold gaze. She immediately instructed me to do the housework, her tone full of disdain. As I began my chores, she stood there taunting me. โ€œElijah told me not to ask you to deliver things in the future,โ€ she said with a scoff. โ€œYou canโ€™t even be relied on for such a simple task.โ€ Her words cut deep. โ€œWhen you first came to our house carrying a baby in your belly, it was okay that you couldn't do anything,โ€ she continued. โ€œThen you had lost your baby and you had to spend months recovering and regaining your health. Now you can't even deliver a document, so what's the meaning for Elijah of having you as a wife?" Her words were like daggers, each one piercing my heart. And then, in a cruel twist, she added, โ€œMy son would be better off with Serena. She's prettier, smarter, and she even managed to land a job at his company! Unlike you... You can't even perform simple housework that well.โ€ Sure enough, she already knew that Serena worked at Elijah's company. She asked me to deliver the papers today just to make a fool of me. The room felt suffocating, the burden of her words pressing down on me. I felt utterly alone, realizing that no one had ever been on my side. I clenched my fists, struggling against the wave of tears threatening to spill. Sweeping the floor became a mechanical task, a facade to hide my turmoil. The repeated humiliations and frustrations drained me of the energy to fight back or explain myself yet again. I donโ€™t deserve this, I thought sourly. Itโ€™s time for me to escape, to save myself. With bitter tears streaming down my cheeks, I rushed to my room and grabbed the papers Iโ€™d hidden. Staring at me from the front page were the words: Divorce Agreement. Iโ€™ve had enough. Flashbacks of how Elijah and Morgana had been treating me filled my mind. Despite my efforts to be the dutiful wife and daughter-in-law, Iโ€™d always seemed invisible to them. Iโ€™ve been obedient, helpful, and hardworkingโ€ฆ But no one cares. Not even my own husband. Iโ€™m nothing to him. He doesnโ€™t love me and he never learned to. Thatโ€™s the most painful of all. My heart tightened. His indifference cut deeper than any overt cruelty could. And now, with Serena back in the picture, their attention gravitated toward her. I felt more isolated than ever. This is the last straw! I must get out of here, or Iโ€™ll lose my sanity! That evening, I hadnโ€™t realized Iโ€™d already fallen asleep when I heard the bedroom door open. Something made a loud, clattering noise. I quickly sat up and saw Elijah staggering toward me. He mumbled something about a dinner party as he plopped on the bed and started sliding his fingers down my bare arm. I hastily moved backward, giving him a look of disbelief. He was obviously drunk. If he wasnโ€™t, he would have just ignored me and gone straight to bed. โ€œHey, playing hard to get, arenโ€™t you?โ€ he said in a slurred manner, his bloodshot eyes becoming more intense. Then without warning, he leaned forward and kissed me on the lips. I didnโ€™t have time to react, though, because he suddenly started unbuttoning my oversized nightshirt. โ€œWhen did Serena start working at your company?โ€ I asked him coldly. He shrugged, but didnโ€™t stop what he was doing. โ€œNot sure. Probably recruited by HR.โ€ His lips traveled down and then his tongue followed. Finally, the last button on my sleep pajama surrendered. โ€œSerena is such a talented addition to our team,โ€ he remarked with admiration. As I reminisced about the scene I witnessed at the company, my husband and his ex-girlfriend Serena were closely nestled together, sharing laughter and conversation. But I couldn't muster the courage to confront her and ask her to keep her distance from him. Jealousy and pain gripped my chest. I couldnโ€™t believe he was saying all this while undressing me! I knew then that he still had feelings for her. โ€œYou know,โ€ he said, oblivious to my disappointment, โ€œshe's even outperforming many of the senior colleagues who've been with the company for years.โ€ Even as we locked eyes, there was something in his gazeโ€”a kind of infatuationโ€”that he never seemed to exhibit when it came to me. Heโ€™s probably picturing me as her! I thought with disgust. I was so disappointed in him, and didnโ€™t want him anywhere near me. But when I pulled away, he threw me an irritated look. โ€œWhatโ€™s wrong with you?โ€ he asked, taken aback that I was saying no to his advances unlike before. I didnโ€™t answer. He narrowed his eyes at me. โ€œYouโ€™ve been down in the dumps for months now! I thought youโ€™d snap out of it, but youโ€™ve only gotten worse. Itโ€™s depressing to even see you.โ€ I cringed at his words, the searing pain crushing my heart. He couldnโ€™t even see how my spirit was being shattered because of him. โ€œMaybe itโ€™s because of the baby we lostโ€ฆโ€ he mused. Sliding his fingers down the surface of my cheek and then my neck, he added in a drunken slur, โ€œWhy donโ€™t we just make another baby?โ€ I couldnโ€™t believe my ears. I knew that whenever he was drunk, he spoke without inhibitions. He was often brutally honest in this state. Hence, he meant every word and that only showed how much he didnโ€™t understand me or the problem we had in this marriage. My whole body was shaking as the misery and fury Iโ€™ve been keeping inside rose to the surface. He doesnโ€™t get it. Or maybe he just doesnโ€™t care. I was totally pissed off. And thatโ€™s when I blurted it out. โ€œI want to divorce you.โ€ CHAPTER 3 I could sense his mind reeling from the unexpected news. He opened his mouth as if to say something. I expected him to respond, to react, to ask questions. Anything at all! But he never said anything. My heart thumped hard as we gazed at one another โ€” strangers whoโ€™d been forced to live together. I had tried so hard to make this marriage work even after we had lost the baby. But it takes two to succeed at this, I realized. โ€œI want a divorce,โ€ I repeated, keeping my voice steady. โ€œIโ€™m serious.โ€ Slowly he nodded. โ€œYes, sure,โ€ he answered before getting up and disappearing into the bathroom. My heart felt like it was about to explode. I pulled my open shirt around me, desperately covering myself up, as I coiled into a fetal position with my head throbbing. A tear dropped down my cheek, and I quickly brushed it away. This is it. Iโ€™m going to be free. And yet somehow, I didnโ€™t feel that ecstatic. His reaction only confirmed my worst suspicions. Now I know the truth โ€” he never loved me at all. Heโ€™s not even upset about the divorce! I sighed. Itโ€™s time for me to move on. The next day, after eating breakfast on my own, I mustered up all my courage and called Elijah to the study. โ€œWe should sign this,โ€ I said without any emotion, showing him the divorce papers. He sat on the sofa across from me, looking at me quietly. His gaze always made me feel a little nervous, but today was different. I signed the papers and urged him to do the same. โ€œElijah, please,โ€ I whispered, making sure my voice wouldnโ€™t break. โ€œLet's end this.โ€ His face contorted in a horrible expression as he ruthlessly grabbed the agreement from me. But he didnโ€™t sign immediately. He took a long time going over each page while I waited impatiently. Then his phone suddenly rang. I saw it light up with Serenaโ€™s name, making my heart tighten. I canโ€™t believe this womanโ€™s timing! But Elijah only glanced at it before returning to reviewing the papers. Perhaps he didnโ€™t want to answer it because I was in the room with him. A myriad of emotions threatened to engulf me. I stood up and positioned myself in front of him with my arms crossed against my heart. โ€œWhy donโ€™t you just hurry up and sign those so you can get going? Someone might be waiting for you in the office.โ€ He glanced at me warily, then took out his pen and signed everything. With an angry grunt, he threw the papers down on the sofa and stormed out of the room. Watching him go, I was filled with overwhelming feelings โ€” relief, frustration, anger, sadness. โ€œIโ€™m finally free,โ€ I murmured to myself incredulously. While I was packing my bags in the bedroom, Morgana suddenly charged inside. In her usual bossy voice, she said, โ€œThe morningโ€™s almost over, Sophia! Go do the laundry now.โ€ With a sarcastic huff, I turned around to face her. โ€œSorry, but Elijah and I just signed a divorce agreement. I will no longer do any housework for you.โ€ Her face reddened in anger. I could almost see steam coming out of her ears as she crossed her arms on her pit and scolded me angrily. "You married into our family for two years, no children, and now you want a divorce," she spat out bitterly. I scoffed, not bothering to respond. It doesnโ€™t matter anymore. I can finally ignore her completely! But then, almost as quickly as her anger had surfaced, her mood changed. โ€œYou know what? It's actually quite nice,โ€ she said, her tone almost mocking. โ€œElijah can finally marry someone better, like Serina. Every single day that I see you hanging your head in despair, it just makes my blood boil. Anyone would make a better wife than you!โ€ Her words infuriated me. I wanted to slap away that haughty look on her face, but it would just be a waste of energy. Iโ€™m done here. Iโ€™m done with all this. Suddenly, memories flooded back of a time when Morgana had shown kindness, especially during my pregnancy with her grandchild. She had been caring and considerate. However, after I lost my baby, her demeanor changed drastically. She began treating me like a mere servant rather than a member of the family. I could never understand why she became so hostile all of a sudden. Sometimes I wondered if it had more to do with herself than with me. That afternoon, I went home to where I grew up. As I settled in, I felt relieved that at least I had a place I could call my own. โ€œLuckily I hadnโ€™t sold it,โ€ I muttered, looking around the living room and remembering my adoptive father. This house is the only connection I have left with him. Night swept in quickly. I was worn out and exhausted. Climbing onto my old bed, I was ready to relax when I received a message from my best friend Kayla. It showed a secretly taken photo of Elijah and Serena in a club, sitting intimately close and laughing together. A chill ran down my spine as I read the angry message from Kayla: That Elijah! You have no idea what I saw! Elijah was out partying and flirting with that Serena, which he never did with you! My heart sank, anger and sadness clouded my mind as I realized he was indeed getting back together with Serena and flaunting her around. Forcing back my tears, I told Kayla: Itโ€™s over between me and Elijah. We were divorced. CHAPTER 4 โ€œAaarrgghh! I so hate that guy for doing this to you!โ€ Kayla hissed. โ€œIf I had known heโ€™d treat you like that, I wouldnโ€™t have allowed you to even come near him during our grad celebration! And I wouldnโ€™t have kept pushing you to hook up with him, no matter how gorgeous he was!โ€ Being the daughter of Raven Mediaโ€™s renowned CEO, Kayla Davis always hung out with high society. She saw Elijah a lot at parties since they belonged to the same circle. We also all happened to attend Fairview University where Kayla and I had majored in Interior Design. Hence, she not only knew Elijah but Serena too. โ€œYou should have seen them at the party last night!โ€ she cried out, causing some people to give us a dirty look. Lowering her voice, she leaned forward with a repulsed look. โ€œThey didnโ€™t even care that I was there! They were justโ€ฆ Aaahhh! I really couldnโ€™t take it, so I went over there and gave them a piece of my mind. I told them they ought to be ashamed of themselves!โ€ โ€œOh, wow,โ€ I uttered in disbelief. โ€œBut itโ€™s over now, Kayla. Iโ€™m doing my best to move on.โ€ Kayla was still fuming. But then, she eventually smiled and leaned over to squeeze my hands. โ€œIโ€™m always here for you, Sophia. You know that.โ€ โ€œThanks so much. Iโ€™m really grateful to have someone who really cares about me,โ€ I responded with a fluttering heart. โ€œWell, youโ€™ve always had my back even in high school. So now itโ€™s my turn to return the favor.โ€ Kayla and I became best friends during our freshman year in high school. We came to know each other well when we first worked on an art project together. Weโ€™d hit it off at once, and the rest was history. โ€œAnyway, I can see that Elijah never loved you and he doesnโ€™t deserve you, Sophia,โ€ she went on. โ€œSo what are you planning now?โ€ โ€œWell, Iโ€™ve been giving it some thoughtโ€ฆโ€ I began, suddenly feeling excited for the future. โ€œA few weeks ago, I applied for this postgraduate program at Goldwell Institute of Art in Franceโ€”โ€ โ€œYou did not!โ€ she interrupted me, her lips turning up into a huge grin. Suddenly, she jumped up from her seat and gave me a hug. โ€œThis will surely be your big break!โ€ I laughed. โ€œI havenโ€™t been accepted yet, you know.โ€ โ€œOh, but you will be!โ€ Kaylaโ€™s enthusiasm was so contagious that I could already picture myself studying there, exploring France, and enjoying myself. But then, my mood suddenly changed again when I heard my phone ringing and saw Elijahโ€™s name popping up on the screen. I froze up. Kaylaโ€™s eyes narrowed when she saw it too. โ€œGo ahead and answer it. See what he has to say.โ€ As soon as I accepted the call, I heard Elijahโ€™s sharp tone of voice on the other end. โ€œYou filed for our divorce, and now your family wants cash from me?! Unbelievable!โ€ โ€œWait, what do you mean?โ€ โ€œYou know Iโ€™m busy in the office, then here comes your brother with another excuse for needing financial help! He had the nerve to barge into the conference room and disrupt our meeting!โ€ Elijah railed angrily. I felt mortified and helpless. โ€œIโ€™ll talk to Troy.โ€ โ€œGood. Make sure he doesnโ€™t come back again ever.โ€ Then he hung up. I was so shocked that I couldnโ€™t speak for a while. My family's constant demands for cash had reached a tipping point. No matter how many times I tried to set boundaries, they continued to use me and interrupt Elijah. It felt like I had no control over the situation, and it was greatly upsetting. โ€œSorry I have to go now, Kayla,โ€ I said, bravely deciding to act immediately. She nodded in understanding and we said goodbye. I immediately rushed to the house where my adoptive mother and brother had moved to after my adoptive father Tom Bennett passed away. Heโ€™d left me the original house where heโ€™d taken care of me like his real own child. But the rest of the inheritance had been taken by his wife and son. Theyโ€™d bought a bigger house and I never heard from them again. Not until they learned of my marrying a wealthy man in the famous Sinclair clan. Brenda was certainly not pleased to hear what I had to say. โ€œWhat did you say?! You divorced Elijah, the billionaire CEO of Sinclair Realty Group?!! Are you out of your mind?!!โ€ Behind her, my brother Troy looked as if he wanted to punch the wall. โ€œIt was never going to work out,โ€ I said, trying to maintain my composure. โ€œJust please stop bothering him. Weโ€™ve cut our ties. You canโ€™t ask for anything from him anymore.โ€ โ€œOh, man!โ€ Troy exclaimed with frustration. Two years ago, after I married Elijah, Brenda and Troy came back and pretended like we were a tight-knit family. At first, Elijah was kind and understanding of their needs. But when he noticed how abusive they had become, always asking for financial support, he became impatient and angry. One time, they even borrowed cash in my name and never paid it back. It had become one of the reasons why Morgana was so angry with me. โ€œDid you fight? Maybe you can still fix it!โ€ Brenda said, looking desperate. Troy scoffed. โ€œWhen I went to his office, I saw him talking to this beautiful, sexy blonde. Iโ€™m guessing thereโ€™s a third party involved! People who donโ€™t know better would think that woman is his wife!โ€ CHAPTER 5 My heart felt like it would explode any time now. โ€œIt doesnโ€™t matter,โ€ I eventually said to Troy. โ€œItโ€™s none of my business now. I donโ€™t care what he does with that woman or with whomever.โ€ Then staring hard at him and my foster mother, I said sharply, โ€œWeโ€™re definitely not getting back together, so the two of you should just stop going to him for anything! Just stop!โ€ โ€œButโ€ฆโ€ Brenda began to protest. I raised my hand to stop her. โ€œElijah and I are over. Besides, Iโ€™ll soon move to France and study there. And since you only contacted me again because of Elijahโ€™s wealth, then now you wonโ€™t have any more need for me, right?โ€ They were both shocked at my words because I had never spoken like that in the past. But it was time for me to step up and put myself first for once. โ€œAll thing that you swindled out of my ex-husbandโ€™s pocket, consider it as your payment for raising me,โ€ I went on in a steady voice. โ€œWe donโ€™t have to see or talk to each other ever again.โ€ On the way home, I began to feel a migraine coming. I closed my eyes and massaged my temples as I sat in the back seat of a cab. All of this dramaโ€™s taking a toll on me, I guess. But as I neared the house, I felt increasingly queasy and unwell. I realized my health hadnโ€™t fully recovered since the loss. โ€œCould you please take me to the hospital?โ€ I asked the driver, trying to keep my voice steady despite the rising nausea. He nodded and quickly changed course, navigating toward the nearest medical facility. The ride felt endless, each bump in the road exacerbating my discomfort. By the time we arrived, I could barely contain the churning in my stomach. I burst through the hospital doors, a wave of dizziness threatening to overwhelm me. My vision blurred, and I stumbled forward, nearly colliding with a figure in front of me. Before I could hit the ground, strong hands gripped my arms, steadying me. Gasping for breath, I looked up and found myself staring into the concerned eyes of a very handsome and familiar-looking man. โ€œAre you okay? You look like you're about to faint,โ€ he said, his brows furrowed with worry. With our eyes locked on each other, before I could even reply, a look of recognition crossed his features. โ€œOh, wait! Itโ€™s you. Sophia Bennett from Green Valley High, right?โ€ I was surprised, looking at him closely. His features reminded me of someone I knew a long way back. โ€œUh, Daniel?โ€ I eventually said, recalling his name. We had gone to the same high school, but he was a year older than me. โ€œYes, yes. Wait, let me bring you to our family doctor. You look really pale.โ€ I felt too sick to pretend I was fine, so I just let him lead me through the corridor and into one of the clinics. He quickly introduced me to the doctor whom he seemed to know well. As the doctor greeted me, concern etched across his face, I explained how I'd been feeling. He listened attentively, nodding as I spoke. After a brief discussion, he led me to an examination room, asking Daniel to wait outside. The examination was thorough, and I appreciated the doctor's calming demeanor. Afterward, he suggested some basic tests to determine the cause of my symptoms. โ€œHow are you feeling now?โ€ Daniel asked kindly once I sat down beside him in the waiting area. โ€œA little better, but still kinda dizzy,โ€ I answered honestly. โ€œThanks for the assistance, but itโ€™s okay if you have somewhere to be. Youโ€™ve already done too much for me.โ€ โ€œOh, itโ€™s okay,โ€ he said with a smile. โ€œUnless you donโ€™t want me here.โ€ โ€œItโ€™s nothing like that, of course!โ€ I quickly replied. โ€œThanks for accompanying me. It feels good to have someone to talk to while Iโ€™m here.โ€ โ€œWell, Iโ€™m all ears. People say Iโ€™m a good listener.โ€ I beamed at him, his presence a comforting anchor in the sterile hospital environment. Chuckling, I said, โ€œI donโ€™t really know you, Danielโ€ฆโ€ โ€œYou know my name. Thatโ€™s a start.โ€ His grin seemed to brighten up the surroundings, and I just felt immediately comfortable with him. I couldn't help but feel a sense of familiarity and trust wash over me. We hadn't been close in high school, but something about his calm demeanor and genuine concern made me want to open up. โ€œI rememberโ€ฆ Daniel Pierceโ€ฆโ€ I began, smiling. I could feel my headache and nausea diminishing. โ€œHigh school jock, but a bit geeky and always at the top of the class.โ€ He laughed. โ€œYouโ€™ve got a good memory, Sophia Bennett. I remember you too โ€” the smart, quiet, very talented artist whom all the boys noticed but never had the nerve to approach.โ€ I laughed too at his astonishing description of me. โ€œYouโ€™re joking!โ€ โ€œNo, itโ€™s trueโ€ฆ Really! Iโ€™m sure youโ€™ve managed to get yourself a very good-looking husband. Let me guess, a CEO?โ€ He was kidding, but hitting close to home made me frown as I remembered Elijah. โ€œGood-looking, yes. CEO, yes. But husband? Not anymore.โ€ โ€œOh.โ€ His expression changed immediately. โ€œIโ€™m sorry to hear that.โ€ โ€œYou know, it's been a rough few months,โ€ I began tentatively, twiddling my thumbs in my lap. โ€œI'm actually going through a divorce, and my family... they keep asking for cash from my ex-husband, which just complicates things even more.โ€ Daniel's expression shifted to one of empathy, and he nodded, encouraging me to continue. โ€œAnd then I lost my baby...It's been tough, physically and emotionally. I just feel like I'm carrying the weight of the world on my shoulders, you know?โ€ He nodded in understanding. โ€œIโ€™m so sorry to hear all that, Sophia. But you seem like a really strong woman. Iโ€™m sure you can get back on your feet in no time. Usually, it helps to be in a change of environment. Have you considered that?โ€ โ€œYeah, starting anew in a foreign land,โ€ I answered, thinking about my application in France. โ€œHmmโ€ฆ sounds like a pretty bold move," Daniel remarked, his eyes reflecting admiration and amusement at the same time. โ€œIt takes courage to make such a big change.โ€ I smiled weakly. โ€œActually, I've applied for graduate studies in France. It's something I've always wanted to do.โ€ Daniel's eyebrows shot up in surprise. โ€œReally? That's incredible! I recently got accepted at the Goldwell Business School in Parisโ€ฆโ€ My jaw dropped. โ€œWhat? Iโ€™m planning to go to the Goldwell Institute of Art!โ€ He looked at me with astonishment. โ€œWhat are the odds, huh? Looks like weโ€™ll be seeing more of each other. Those institutions share practically the same campus.โ€ I couldn't believe the coincidence, though I was still feeling down. โ€œThatโ€™s reallyโ€ฆ something else.โ€ โ€œSurely youโ€™ll get in. Where do you plan to stay in Paris?โ€ โ€œThe Latin Quarter, of course. Iโ€™m looking at an apartment there, since itโ€™s where most students live.โ€ Daniel chuckled. โ€œAnd it looks like weโ€™ll be neighbors too. I think we were meant to cross paths again right now, right here.โ€ He gave me a lopsided grin. โ€œWho knows? Maybe weโ€™re destined to explore France together! When you book your plane ticket, let me know. Letโ€™s fly together. I mean, if thatโ€™s alright with you?โ€ His offer warmed my heart, and for the first time in a long while, I felt a glimmer of hope. โ€œThank you, Danielโ€ฆโ€ Suddenly, I heard my name being called by the assistant, motioning for me to come back into the clinic. โ€œMiss Sophia Bennett?โ€ she informed me. โ€œYour test results are here.โ€ CHAPTER 6 Daniel followed me into the doctor's office, providing support. The doctor smiled warmly at us, his expression giving nothing away. โ€œWell, Sophia,โ€ he began, his tone measured, โ€œthe results are in. Congratulations to you both.โ€ I felt a rush of confusion and disbelief. โ€œYouโ€™re going to be parents. Congratulations!โ€ the doctor added. Iโ€™mโ€ฆ pregnant?! How could that be? My last baby had left me only months ago. Even I just signed divorce papers with Elijah, and now I'm carrying his child? The room spun around me as embarrassment flooded my cheeks. Probably because he was mistaken for the baby's father, Daniel looked surprised but did not contradict the doctor. โ€œOther than that, youโ€™re perfectly healthy, Sophia,โ€ the doctor assured me. He went on to discuss some things with Daniel, but I hardly heard them talking. My heart pounded crazily, and my mind felt fuzzy. Once again, I felt like I was caught up in a weird dream. None of it was real. Daniel was quiet as we left the hospital. I didnโ€™t know what to say either. โ€œLet me drive you home, Sophia,โ€ he offered once we were outside. His eyes were filled with concern for me. I was just too tired and confused to say no, so I simply nodded. He did not ask any questions, and I was glad. What am I going to do? I asked myself in silence while in the car, feeling the panic rising in my throat. This is the worst timing ever. Elijah and I just got divorced, and Iโ€™m supposed to have a whole new life ahead of me. Anxiety took over me. Everything was about to change again. If I have this baby, it wonโ€™t have a father, I thought bitterly. And how can I take care of it on my own while living in a different country where I donโ€™t have anyone to help me? My hand moved toward my tummy. There was no baby bump yet, but knowing that there was a little one growing inside gave me chills. Suddenly, I remembered how painful it had been to lose my baby before. This is a blessing, a second chance for me to become a mother. Would I want to risk losing another baby? Slowly I began to calm down. I took deep breaths until my head began to clear. This is a miracle, I told myself. I should be grateful. As I rubbed my belly, I spoke in my mind. Iโ€™m so sorry, baby. Itโ€™s just all too sudden. But I know that Iโ€™m going to take care of you and love you with all my heart. Days flew by, bringing a welcomed calm without Elijah, Brenda, and Troy in the picture. However, internally, I remained in turmoil. Then, the news I had been eagerly awaiting arrivedโ€”I had been accepted into my dream university to study art and design once more! Despite the uncertainty of juggling studies with a baby, I couldn't let this opportunity slip away. In just a weekโ€™s time, I found myself waving goodbye to Kayla at the airport. โ€œCall me when you get there!โ€ she said, her eyes gleaming with tears. It was the first time we would be apart for a long time, and we were like sisters. As I settled into my seat on the airplane, bound for Paris, excitement and nervousness mingled within me. The prospect of starting a new life in a different country threatened to overwhelm my senses. The plane began its ascent, lifting off the ground. I felt a wave of panic wash over me. Beside me, Daniel sensed my unease and reached over, gently squeezing my hand. โ€œEverything will be okay,โ€ he reassured me. โ€œI'm here. We'll do this together.โ€ His words were a comforting balm to my anxious soul, and I found great comfort in his presence. As we chatted throughout the plane ride, ate together, fell asleep, and then chatted some more, I began to relax and come to terms with the situation. I can do this, I thought with more confidence. Then touching my tummy, I silently whispered, Youโ€™re my lucky charm, my baby. By the time we landed safely, Daniel and I were like old buddies. I was truly grateful that he was with me. As the cab wound through Paris, iconic landmarks flashed pastโ€”the Eiffel Tower dominating the skyline, the majestic Louvre in the distance, and quaint streets bustling with cafes and shops. Despite my worries, the beauty of the city had me momentarily elated, filling me with a sense of excitement and wonder. Beside me, Daniel seemed entranced, his eyes wide with wonder. Soon, we were unloading my bags at my new apartment. It was semi-furnished, and I was immediately drawn to the light blue walls and the inviting white sofa. But my favorite part of all was the large window that gave me a fantastic view of the busy city street below. This was itโ€”the start of my new life in Paris. I turned to Daniel, who was looking around the apartment with a satisfied smile. โ€œLooks like you've got yourself a nice little place here,โ€ he remarked, glancing back at me. "Yeah, I think I'm going to like it here," I replied. Daniel chuckled. โ€œJust remember to take it easy, okay? You've had a long journey.โ€ I rolled my eyes. โ€œI'm fine, Daniel. I'm not going to keel over from exhaustion.โ€ He raised an eyebrow, and then grinned. โ€œI'm just saying, youโ€™ll be too heavy for me to carry if you collapse!โ€ I threw the throw pillow at him jokingly. โ€œOh, shut up.โ€ We both laughed. He added, โ€œYou need to get some beauty sleep, Sophia. I'm sure you'll want to look your best when you meet your new classmates.โ€ โ€œOh, so now you're concerned about my appearance?โ€ Daniel grinned. โ€œHey, a little rest never hurt anyone. And who knows, maybe you'll meet a cute French guy who'll sweep you off your feet.โ€ I playfully nudged him. โ€œI think I'll pass on that, thank you very much. I'm here to focus on my studies, not my love life.โ€ He appeared pleased with that statement. โ€œFair enough,โ€ he answered with a teasing smile. โ€œBut you never know what could happen. Paris is the city of love, after all.โ€ I felt a little flutter in my heart, wondering if I could learn to look at him as more than a friend. Perhaps it's more accurate to say he's akin to a brother rather than just a friend. The assistance he's provided far exceeds anything I've received from Elijah in years. Sighing, I went over to my bags. โ€œCome on, just help me unpack already so we can check out your apartment next.โ€ As we were unpacking, my phone rang. I figured it was Kayla so I asked Daniel to answer it, showing him that my hands were full at the moment. โ€œHello?โ€ I heard Daniel say. He put the call on speaker mode. โ€œWho the hell is this? Where's Sophia?โ€ a very familiar male voice demanded, his tone aggressive and impatient. My heart felt like it had just plummeted to the ground. I felt my whole body trembling when Daniel handed the phone to me. I didn't have to hold the phone to my ear to hear Elijah's furious growling, "Sophia, YOU CAN'T just walk away like this! Where the hell are you now?! Without my permission, you are not allowed to go anywh...." I pressed the button to end the call without hearing his entire words, calming my quivering heart with a big and deep breath. It's true that Elijah has never been very considerate or tender with me, but he hasn't really stepped on me rudely either. It's just that lately, he's been indifferent to me. Anyway, he'd never been as emotionally cranky as he was now. Did my leaving make him care? No, don't be silly, Sophia, he can be with Serena again now. He's free. How do you expect that he would care about you, a woman he had never loved? Daniel noticed my paradoxical anxiety. "Who is he?" Daniel inquired. But I could see in his eyes that he clearly knew the answer to that question. I sighed, "My husband. No, ex-husband." LEARN_MORE https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid= Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 thebvhwysgng.com IMAGE https://thebvhwysgng.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=12887&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-1.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/452913984_460879953402058_498659834094278599_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=107&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=paQuRkOrf5gQ7kNvgG5w3_E&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-1.xx&_nc_gid=A8IPBNzvQRRdmP-z8wv84oc&oh=00_AYDGQr1WDcoG2iCefbIT4Q6XDr7YB7bqL4UR9HI6NoMyyQ&oe=67307C90 PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,358,301
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2358300}'
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”žAttention! Do not read in public๏ผ๐Ÿ‘‰ "Where is she?" I hear the Beta scream. I groan and rise to my feet, grabbing the cleaning basket before heading over. The moment Beta Kyle sees me, he strides towards me and his hand slices against my cheek. I don't make a sound. Years of experience has taught me to keep my mouth shut at all times. "Alpha Trey and I are expecting company and you still have not cleaned the office." Beta Kyle spits at me. I nod my head and my hand tightens on the cleaning basket. If only I could find the courage to swing it at his head, it would make my day. But I didn't need another week locked up with no food. My stomach already hurt enough. LEARN_MORE https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783& New world publications https://www.facebook.com/100090352943774/ 3,752 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 wwwedb.com DCO https://wwwedb.com/market/meganovel/13?lpid=11783&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}}&placement={{placement}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/457515879_2483447985348697_6941740797348946983_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=9U-6v4DthG0Q7kNvgEibWcf&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=ARIi4VeTzGsHWC62zFtKabQ&oh=00_AYAFdqFuGuil3mBweHFC3eYqXZqosf0f2iY7WQnHeLOGHA&oe=67307319 PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 New world publications 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,467
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
null
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 Read next chapter On her wedding anniversary, she dressed up for a date but was drugged and manipulated by her husband's mistress, leading to spend a night with a stranger. To her surprise, he turned out to be her husband's half-brother and business rival! ===== In the dimly lit, opulent private cinema, the most exclusive jewelry auction was being broadcast live. "One million, going once, going twice--" The rich cadence of the auctioneer's voice echoed through the room, the man tightened his grip around Alicia Bennett's waist... With the intensity between them only grew fiercer as time passed... The auctioneer's gavel fell. "Sold for ten million! Let's give a round of applause to Mr. Joshua Yates!" The name struck Alicia like a lightning bolt. Her body instantly went rigid, something that the man couldn't help but notice, flicked lazily toward the screen. The camera zoomed in on Joshua Yates's face, every detail of his familiar features displayed in perfect clarity. "Joshua Yates, the second son of the Yates family... an acquaintance perhaps?" he drawled, the corners of his mouth tugging into a sly smile. Alicia's frown deepened. The last thing she wanted was to discuss it, she didn't respond. The man, upon seeing the situation, chuckled lightly before his movements grew even more relentless... ...... When it was over, Alicia took advantage of the man's time in the shower and quietly made her escape. When Caden Ward finally emerged from the bathroom, not catching sight of the woman's figure, he curled his lips slightly. Moments later, his assistant, Hank Ford, burst into the room, clearly on edge, "Er, apologies, Mr. Ward. I let my guard down. Give me a moment, and I'll have her brought back immediately." They had just returned to the country, taking every precaution. And yet, a woman had managed to slip through the cracks of their security. Caden's features calm, almost indifferent. "No need. I was... a willing participant." Hank's eyes widened in shock. In all the time he'd known Caden, the man had never slept with a woman,even physical contact. There were even rumors that Caden might suffer from some secret ailment. Yet now, those whispers seemed to evaporate in the face of this unexpected turn of events. Before Hank could make sense of it, Caden's deep voice pulled him back to reality. "I want you to look into Joshua's personal life. Have the report on my desk in half an hour." Tonight, Alicia had stumbled into his room, feverish and desperate. It was obvious she'd been framed. And then came the revelation--Alicia was still a pureness. Two years of marriage to Joshua... Yet she was still untouched? Caden's lips curled into a satisfied smile. But as he reflected, one thing became abundantly clear--Alicia had no idea who she'd been with due to the d*ug's effects. ... By the time Alicia returned home, the first light of dawn filtered through the windows. Only then did she realize how long she had been out. But before she could dwell any further, her phone rang. It was her bestie, Monica Flynn, calling. "Alicia!" Monica practically screeched from the other end of the line, her voice high-pitched with worry. "How are you now?" Alicia exhaled deeply, kicking off her shoes carelessly. "I've been better," she murmured. Monica's anger bubbled over, her words sharp and unrelenting. "Joshua's beyond disgusting! If he doesn't want to stay married, he should just grow a spine and divorce you already! What kind of sick man would scheme against his own wife?" The sharp pain of betrayal shot through Alicia's chest. Yesterday was their second anniversary. Joshua had texted her, suggesting they celebrate. Daring to hope he had changed, she had dressed up to the nine's, only to be met with disappointment and a d*ug-laced drink that sent her spiraling into a night of confusion and chaos. Was Joshua really the mastermind behind this? Swallowing the bitterness that tried clawing its way to the surface, Alicia forced herself to climb the stairs, her movements slow and weary. "It's fine, Monica. I'll handle it." Monica, ever protective, wasn't convinced. "'Handle it'? What do you mean you'll handle it? Just say the word, and I'll be over in a heartbeat." Alicia couldn't help the small, tired smile that tugged at her lips, hanging up the phone. But her heart still felt heavy, just as she lost focus, the door to her bedroom creaked open. She lifted her gaze, and almost instantly, her stomach dropped. There, fresh from a shower, a towel wrapped loosely around his waist, stood Joshua. He stared down at her. Chapter 2 Divorce Alicia snapped out of her daze as soon as she met the icy gaze of Joshua, her so-called husband. His expression remained unchanged, cold and indifferent as ever, as though he was looking at a stranger. The only thing out of place was the scars on his lips. A wave of disgust washed over her, she pushed him away and was about to enter. Joshua frowned, his hand shooting out to grab her wrist. "Alicia, what's with the attitude?" He seemed quite unhappy with her this time, which was a rare thing, considering how little he bothered to come home. Normally, Alicia would have welcomed him back with open arms, a flicker of joy lighting up her tired features, but today she looked drained, almost hollow. She didn't resist his grip, meeting his gaze with a calmness that unnerved him. "Haven't I always been like this? Obedient, sensible, making sure the house is in order, ensuring you're comfortable, ready to give your best at work." A small, bitter smile tugged at her lips. "Isn't that what you like most about me? It makes things easier for you, doesn't it? Frees up time for your other... 'special someone'." Joshua's eyes darkened at the veiled accusation. Denial hovered on his lips, but he didn't bother. Why should he? He dropped her hand and said gruffly, "Actually, that's why I'm here. We need to talk." Alicia vigorously rubbed her wrist, as though she was trying to erase his touch. "So, are you planning to finally go public with her?" Joshua's expression twisted instantly, his calm facade cracking. "What do you know? Did you have me stalked by a private investigator or something?" Alicia let out a soft, humorless laugh. "Is that necessary? Last night, you spared no expense to make her happy. Even a blind person could tell you're mad about her." He stared at her, unsettled by her icy tone. It was still her voice, still Alicia, but there was something different about her... For some reason, he felt inexplicably hurt, like a thorn pricking his heart. Perhaps it was the way she looked at him now--her eyes, once warm and filled with love for him, were now completely empty. There was no anger, no pain, just... nothing. It was a stark contrast to the woman who used to look at him as if he were her entire world. For reasons he couldn't explain, the sight of her like this stirred something in him, an unfamiliar dissatisfaction. Annoyed by his own reaction, Joshua decided to hit back, his voice harder now. "She's pregnant. It's a delicate pregnancy, so I bought her a little something to lift her spirits." Alicia's fists clenched before she could stop them. P**gnant? So, the nights she had stayed up waiting for him to come home, he'd been with another woman, working diligently to start a new family? Seeing Alicia wince a little, Joshua felt a flicker of satisfaction. "It's not that I don't want to touch you," he said, voice dripping with condescension. "You're just about as thrilling as watching paint dry. No man would want that." His cruel words pierced through Alicia, yet she managed to remain composed on the surface. It wasn't that she avoided intimacy; she just wasn't the one to initiate it. Did that make her so undesirable? Was it a sin? Taking a slow, steady breath, Alicia willed herself to stay calm. "Fine," she replied quietly. "Let's get a divorce then. You can give her the title she wants." The word "divorce" made Joshua's eyelid twitch involuntarily. He scoffed, eyes narrowing with suspicion. "Is this another one of your games?" Convinced he was right, his voice grew colder, more biting. "Alicia, for two years, you've pulled every childish stunt, begging for my attention. Aren't you tired yet? Because I sure as hell am." He paused, letting his disdain sink in. "You claim to love me so much. Could you really walk away from me?" Alicia couldn't help the bitter laugh that escaped her. Love him? Did he even understand what that meant? When Joshua's business had crumbled, leaving him with nothing but debt and shattered dreams, it had been Alicia who emptied her savings to pull him from the wreckage. Out of gratitude--or maybe obligation--he had married her. For two long years, she had been the dutiful wife, supporting him as he clawed his way to success. And what had Alicia gotten in return? She had been cast aside like a useless relic, while another woman carried his child. Her love, her loyalty, had been ground into the dirt beneath his feet. To care for this man any longer would be masochism. Her voice steady, Alicia said, "Draft the divorce agreement. I'll agree to whatever terms you want." And with that, she turned and disappeared through the door, leaving Joshua standing alone in the hallway. For a moment, he stared after her angrily, but then a cold, mocking smile tugged at his lips. Fine, she can play the martyr. He doubted she could keep it up for long. Storming out of the house, Joshua headed straight to the apartment where his lover, Lilliana Green, awaited him. "Well, that was fast," she teased upon hearing Joshua was getting a divorce, raising a brow. "Seems she wasn't as tough to deal with as you claimed." "She's cunning," Joshua muttered, the edge of suspicion creeping into his voice. "I don't know if she's actually agreeing to the divorce or just playing me." Lilliana's arms draping lazily around his neck, "Relax, Joshua, even if she changes her mind, it's too late." Joshua's brow furrowed. "What do you mean?" Chapter 3 Letting Go Lilliana's eyes flickered with shadowy intent. She wasn't foolish enough to show her cards now, so she waved it off with an effortless excuse. "During your two-year marriage, she has lived quietly in the shadows as a mere housewife, disconnected from your world. When you're assertive, would she dare to say a word?" Joshua pursed his lips into a hard line. During the past two years, Alicia had indeed done everything for him--given him support and solace. She had loved him fiercely, but at the end of it all, what value did love truly hold? Against all odds, he had clawed his way to the top, and he'd finally grasped the power he craved. That success, however, hadn't come easy, and it wasn't love that secured his position--it was alliances with the powerful. The prestige of the Green family daughter, that title alone, was worth far more than Alicia's devoted love. As these thoughts plagued his mind, Lilliana said happily, "Joshua, congratulations on escaping the grind. Shall we celebrate?" For a moment, Joshua's gaze flickered down to her, but Alicia's indifferent face suddenly flashed before his eyes. Since leaving the house earlier, Alicia hadn't once called him to ask for his whereabouts. Before, if he had been upset with her, she would've called him in a panic. A sharp, inexplicable irritation surged within him. Without thinking, he pushed Lilliana back, "You're only a few weeks' pregnant. Be careful." Lilliana, sharp as ever, sensed he was distracted. "Joshua, what's wrong?" she asked gently. "Don't you want to get divorced?" Joshua's response was instant. "Of course I want to divorce her." Her eyes narrowed as she studied him. "Then why don't you seem very happy?" Joshua offered a quick excuse, his voice steady but distant. "My father's condition has worsened. He doesn't have much time left, and Caden returned last night. He's likely here to claim his inheritance. I need to figure out how to handle him." Lilliana blinked, momentarily thrown. "Caden? Your brother from your father's first marriage? He doesn't even carry the Yates name anymore. What right does he have to fight you for the inheritance?" Joshua's expression darkened. It was true--but at the end of the day, he was still the son of a home-wrecker. All these years of relentless effort had not only been to carve out a name for himself in the Yates family, but to push Caden into the shadows where he belonged. One way or another, Joshua was hell-bent on winning. Meanwhile, Alicia stirred from her sleep. Darkness had already fallen, yet she felt even more drained than before. It was because her dreams revolved around that stranger. when her phone buzzed with a call from Monica did she snap out of her daze. "Alicia, I got your bl**d test results. I passed them to a friend of mine with some serious connections. He's digging around to see who bought the stuff." Alicia sat up a little straighter, her mind sharpening. "Thanks, Monica. Appreciate it." "If you really want to thank me, do me a favor: stop obsessing over that j**k. And after the divorce, focus on your career. You owe me that much." Alicia's chest warmed, her head lowering in quiet gratitude. "I know, I know." Now that she thought about it, she had come to the realization that her feelings for Joshua had never been pure love--they were born out of a debt, a sense of obligation. Her family's expectations had always weighed heavily on her, and in that lonely, stifled childhood, it was Joshua who had been there. His companionship had nurtured a vague affection she'd confused for love. "Lucky for me, love's never been something I've held onto tightly," Alicia murmured. "These last two years... I'll just see it as repaying his kindness." Monica paused, her usual boldness tempered with thoughtfulness. She knew better than anyone how, once upon a time, Joshua had indeed loved Alicia. But, it turned out love could be a fleeting thing. "Alicia, I really hope you've let go for good," Monica said with a convicted sigh. A sharp pang hit Alicia's chest, her eyes stinging as she fought back the urge to cry. Quickly, she pressed her hand to her eyelids, refusing to let the tears fall. It was only then she noticed something startling. Stunned, she stared at her hand. The wedding ring--something she had once held onto so tightly--was gone. Gone for a whole day and night, and she hadn't even noticed. Suddenly, her heart felt lighter, the weight of everything she'd been carrying beginning to lift. She whispered, more to herself than anyone, "Yes, I've truly let go." ... It didn't take long for Joshua to notice. He had returned to grab something quickly when his eyes fell on her hand. His brow furrowed as he asked, without thinking, "Where's your wedding ring?" Chapter 4 Her Nemesis Alicia's only concern now was leaving Joshua, so she ignored his question and asked flatly, "Are the divorce papers ready yet?" That word again--"divorce". Irritation flickered across Joshua's eyes. "What's the rush?" he snapped, his voice cold and sharp. "My father's finalizing his will, and if word gets out about my divorce, it'll ruin my standing. Now, pack your things--we're having dinner at the Yates Mansion this afternoon." With Caden's return, the family was throwing a welcome-home dinner for him. They also hoped that by doing so, it'd lift the spirits of Jerald Yates, Joshua's father. However, maintaining the charade of a happy marriage was the last thing on Alicia's mind. "I'm not going," she announced curtly. "Just get the divorce finalized and stop wasting my time." Joshua laughed, a sound that held no warmth. "Oh, come on, Alicia. Stop pretending. You hid the ring because you don't actually want to leave me, right? You can't stand the thought of being without me." He leaned in, smirking, and added, "You've worked hard these past two years. Even if we divorce, I'll still take care of you--as long as you keep me happy." Alicia's eyes widened, disbelief turning into anger. Hid the ring? Couldn't bear to be without him? His arrogant words sounded like nails on a chalkboard to Alicia's ears. With a sharp sneer, she shot back, "Oh, Mr. Yates, how could I possibly make you happy? Don't worry, I'll return the ring--wouldn't want this plain Jane to irk you, right? Once you have it, we're finalizing the divorce immediately." But Joshua wasn't fazed by her venom. He thought he knew her too well, convinced this was just another ploy to get his attention. Without thinking too much, he tossed a bag at her. "We've got guests today. Dress appropriately, and don't make me look bad." Alicia looked down at the bag, her mind flashing back to the countless times she had visited the mansion dressed in modest, unassuming clothes-- doing everything to blend in, to please him and his family. But now, with their divorce looming on the horizon, Alicia no longer cared to play the part of a dutiful wife. After slipping into the outfit, she carefully applied a touch of makeup, just enough to bring out the vibrance in her already flawless complexion. The subtle enhancements accentuated her smooth skin and delicate features, lending her a certain glow. When Joshua saw her descending the staircase, he froze for a brief moment, eyes lingering. Perhaps it was the way the dress hugged Alicia's graceful curves, making her seem more alluring than usual. At the entrance of the Yates Mansion, they both slipped into their familiar roles, masking the tension between them with practiced ease. Alicia casually looped her arm through Joshua's, their movements synchronized as they walked into the courtyard. Though Jerald was too ill to receive anyone, the grand hall bustled with life, relatives filling the space with chatter. The noise hummed around her, but for some reason, as soon as Alicia crossed the threshold, a sharp chill pricked at her skin. She instinctively looked up, her gaze immediately drawn to the figure lounging casually at the far end of the room. Legs crossed, dark shirt unbuttoned just enough to reveal a sliver of his collarbone, the man oozed arrogance, his presence commanding. When Alicia's eyes finally met his-- a familiar, authoritative stare that pinned her in place-- her mind raced as emotions began to surge uncontrollably. Joshua noticed the shift in her demeanor, his brows furrowing as he asked, "What's going on with you?" Alicia's breath caught in her throat. One word escaped her lips, barely audible. "Caden?" Just the mention of his name sent a chill down her spine. To her, Caden was the embodiment of her nightmares. Due to their families' friendship, their paths first crossed at the tender age of ten. Caden, having taken a year off, transferred to her school, and from that moment, Alicia's perfect world began to unravel. She could no longer claim the top spot. No matter how relentless her efforts, no matter how late she stayed up studying, Caden was always a step ahead. He would outscore her by the smallest of margins--a point, maybe two--leaving her perpetually stranded in second place. Anyone else might have accepted defeat, settled into the role of runner-up. But not Alicia. Born into the once prestigious Bennett family, she was raised under the suffocating weight of living up to her family name. Excellence wasn't just a goal--it was the currency by which she could earn her parents' affection. Failure was not an option, yet Caden had the audacity to snatch away everything she'd worked for with what seemed like effortless ease. It was as if he'd set his sights on her from the very beginning, and Alicia, stubborn to a fault, refused to back down. Their rivalry spanned over a decade, a relentless battle fought both openly and in the shadows, and their final showdown took place in college, just before their graduation, at the national competition. Alicia poured her heart and soul into that moment, her focus razor-sharp as she aimed for nothing less than perfection. And she achieved it, having garnered a perfect score. But Caden, ever the serpent, had bribed the judges, twisting the results in his favor. Alicia was forced, once again, into second place. The sting of injustice was deep, but the harshest blow came from her father, Phil Bennett. Over the phone, his voice dripped with disappointment in her ranking. Alicia, having grown accustomed to his tirades, said nothing. She waited for his anger to ebb, then asked quietly, "I'm graduating soon. Will you come back?" Her mother, Donna, had always been her softer solace. She comforted Alicia that day, promising they'd be there for her graduation. But life had other plans. Phil and Donna, rushing back from Itrubisite to attend the graduation, perished in a tragic plane crash. Overnight, Alicia's world crumbled, left an orphan in this cruel world. Since that day, she had never challenged Caden again. Afterward, Caden left Warrington to build his career overseas. ... "He's back for the inheritance," Joshua muttered, his voice barely audible. Alicia cast him a sidelong glance as he continued, "With a family empire as big as ours, an eldest son like him wouldn't give up so easily." Her brow furrowed slightly. It was true--the Yates empire was massive, a legacy most would kill for. But Caden had accumulated his own fortune, surpassing even the family's vast wealth. Did he really care about the inheritance? Then again, this was Caden. Competing was in his blood. Even if he didn't care about the fortune itself, he'd fight tooth and nail just to win, to toy with everyone else. The man had a knack for stirring chaos purely for his own amusement. Alicia had been his rival for as long as she could remember, and even now, the thought of giving him so much as a glance felt like a waste of energy. She turned to walk away. But Joshua caught her wrist, his grip firm yet tense. "I know you two don't get along," he said. "But he's still my elder brother. We need to maintain appearances." Her body stiffened at the touch, and she immediately tried to pull her hand free. Joshua's frown deepened. "Alicia, behave," he hissed. Irritation flared in her chest. "I'm not refusing to go in. Just let go of me first. I don't want your filthy hands touching me." A flicker of something dark passed over Joshua's face, and instead of releasing her, he intertwined their fingers, squeezing them tight. Alicia bit her tongue, silently fuming. As they neared, Caden's gaze slowly lifted, his eyes narrowing in a lazy, almost bored assessment of them. "Caden," Joshua greeted, his tone strained, meeting his brother's gaze with forced cordiality. Caden's eyes flicked to their entwined hands, a smirk tugging at the corner of his mouth. "Your girlfriend?" he asked indifferently, as though he didn't recognize Alicia. Chapter 5 We Meet Again So Soon Alicia's nerves coiled tight like a spring. That voice... Her messy thoughts blurred into chaos, but one thing broke through the haze--Joshua's calm declaration. "Alicia and I have been married for two years now. She cares about me, so we kept it low-key. Just went straight for the registration; no ceremony. You were busy abroad at the time, so we didn't bother you." Caden arched a brow, his voice laced with venomous mockery. "Oh, so she's my sister-in-law." The way he spat the words "sister-in-law" felt more like a s*ap than a title, leaving no doubt about his contempt for her. Alicia could feel the man's sneer underneath every syllable. And all this was thanks to her so-called husband, Joshua. Her hand trembled as she snatched a tissue, vigorously wiping her hand. "Looks like Alicia's a bit of a germophobe," Caden observed, his tone a casual jab at her disgust. Joshua's expression darkened, the tension between them thickening. He hadn't expected her to humiliate him like this. "It seems I've spoiled her too much," he muttered, his voice low and tight with irritation. Caden's eyes gleamed with a dangerous glint. "If it's a serious condition, she should get treated. It could impact her role as a mother. You know how badly our father has wanted a grandchild." At this, something flickered across Joshua's eyes. Even though Alicia, his wife, was right beside him, he went ahead and lied through his teeth. "Thanks for the concern, Caden, but I already have good news for Dad. I just haven't gotten around to telling him yet." Caden's smirk deepened, his gaze flicking toward Alicia, who was about done with the bullshit of a charade. She quietly excused herself and strode off. "How far along is she?" he asked meaningfully. "Doesn't seem like she's pregnant." Joshua didn't miss a beat. "Just a month." The answer was as much a threat as it was an announcement. Now, the inheritance stakes had just been raised, and Jerald, ever focused on continuing the family line, would certainly take his unborn grandchild into consideration. Caden's smile hardened, and Joshua delivered the final blow with a smug undertone. "You'd better catch up, Caden. I can't always be one step ahead." Caden, unfazed, waved his hand lazily. "No rush." ... Alicia stepped onto the terrace, the cool night breeze washing over her skin. She drank in the fresh air hungrily to steady her nerves. Pulling out her phone, she quickly dialed the manager of the private cinema again. "Have you found the ring?" she asked anxiously. The manager hesitated, sounding troubled. "Ms. Bennett, we've searched thoroughly and questioned all the staff, but... we really couldn't find any ring." "Then..." Alicia clenched her fist, her mind racing. "Do you have the contact details of the guest who booked the room that day?" "I'm sorry, but due to our privacy policy, we can't disclose any information on our clients." Her heart sank. "I see," she sighed with resignation. "Please tell me immediately if anything turns up, okay?" In a perfect world, she could've just bought an identical ring and pass it off for the original. Unfortunately, Joshua had that ring custom-made, and it wasn't easy to replicate. After dinner, it started to rain. The relatives began to trickle out one by one. Joshua stood by her side as they made their way to the car, his eyes trailing down to her bare wrist. "If you liked that bracelet at the auction, then I can buy you something like it," he said coolly. Alicia had to resist the urge to roll her eyes sardonically. She didn't believe for a second that Joshua had a change of heart towards her. "Trying to buy my silence, huh?" Her words were sharp, slicing right through Joshua's tender facade. "No need. I have no desire to be tangled up in your affairs." Joshua hadn't intended to sound like that, but her mocking tone struck a nerve. His jaw clenched, and a bitter smile crossed his lips. "Fine. Don't take it. The money I spend on you is a waste anyway." Alicia bit the inside of her cheek before adding firmly, "Joshua, I already told you. I'm willing to leave this marriage empty-handed. Let's sign the divorce papers tomorrow morning and end this once and for all." His smile twisted into something dark, something dangerous. "What about the ring?" "I lost it." Joshua's eyes narrowed, his tone unrelenting. "I don't care about anything else. I want the ring." She could barely contain her frustration, her breath hitching as he delivered his final blow. "If you can't find it," he said coldly, "I'll assume you're holding onto it because you still care about me." Just then, Joshua's phone rang; it was Lilliana calling. "Joshua." She mewled his name pitifully. "The thunder is so loud. I'm scared to sleep alone... Can you come over?" The car wasn't heading anywhere near Lilliana's and Joshua was furious with Alicia, so without a second thought, he kicked her out into the rain and sped off. He didn't even leave her an umbrella. Alicia stood frozen by the roadside, the downpour quickly soaking through her clothes. The cold rain seeped into her bones, chilling her to the core. Gritting her chattering teeth, she swallowed the bitter taste in her mouth and began trudging along the drenched pavement. Behind her, the soft hum of an engine crept closer. A sleek, low-profile Maybach rolled up beside her, its headlights cutting through the rain. "Mr. Ward," the driver said, glancing back, "I believe that's Ms. Bennett." The car slowed to a stop. Caden glanced out the window, his sharp eyes narrowing on Alicia's lonesome figure. She had just paused, her fingers gathering the fabric of her soaked dress, tying it up to ease her stride. Caden's lips curled into a faint. "Invite her inside," he drawled. The car came to a halt next to Alicia. The driver stepped out, holding a large umbrella over her head, his voice polite. "Ms. Bennett, it's hard to find a cab at this hour. May I offer you a ride home?" Alicia's eyes flicked up, recognizing the man as the Yates family's driver. She hesitated for a moment before nodding, her voice soft but steady. "Thank you. Sorry for the inconvenience." However, as soon as she slipped into the backseat of the car, she locked eyes with its other passenger--Caden. "We meet again so soon, sister-in-law?" His voice, smooth as velvet, carried a hint of mischief. ...... What happens next? Available chapters here are limited, click the button below to install the App and enjoy more exciting chapters (Automatically jump to this novel when you open the app) &3& LEARN_MORE https://fbweb.moboreader.net/63310322-fb_contact-e Heat Novel A https://www.facebook.com/100089743291944/ 541 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn more 0 fbweb.moboreader.net VIDEO https://fbweb.moboreader.net/63310322-fb_contact-ena265_2-1019-core1.html?adid={{ad.id}}&char=331118&accid=934080944896999&rawadid=120213481705610714 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465268527_4070992399798268_4913574344813949737_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=105&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=OlMCpFRvOmoQ7kNvgFUYzmZ&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AD2SxzTmNu-TKawhsKwR0r7&oh=00_AYChJSZeCWoBHqoH3dk26s1Laf7RXO619ODC4iZPdXOfwQ&oe=6730672A PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Heat Novel A 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,358,148
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2357785}'
No 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 ๐Ÿ”ฅ๐Ÿ”ฅClick to read the next chapter for free๐Ÿ‘‰ "Awww, Happy Birthday, Miles!" I heard my sister squeal from my side. I swear she spoke at a pitch so high only dogs could hear. Goddess knows why she is so excited. It is only his birthday. He likely doesn't even care, he never normally doesโ€ฆ As I looked up, his blue eyes were locked on me, I raised my gaze to meet his, and could see his eyes shift to a darker blueโ€ฆ was that his wolf? I see a snarl across his face as he suddenly storms out of the room. What was that about? 'Get out here.' Miles is suddenly mind-linking me, and I have to say he sounded far from impressed. That, combined with the angry expression on his face, told me something was off. Would he have rather I had not come? Well, he was not the only oneโ€ฆ 'What?' I questioned, completely confused. Was he annoyed over how I had dressed too? Jeez, it was just a dress. Does it matter? I would go home if it was. 'Outside now.' He demanded once more, sounding even more irritated this time, making me realize I had little choice but to follow his command, so I snuck away from the ongoing party back to the doors of the packhouse. Only to find Miles pacing along the end of the steps, looking a mixture of confused and angry. So why did he need me here? Someone to take his anger out on? I was not willing to be that, I was sure about thatโ€ฆ Just as I was about to walk away, he looked up. โ€œIt took you long enough." He snapped. I frowned, unsure what this was all about, but it was making no sense to me as I looked down toward him from where I stood at the top of the packhouse steps. His blue eyes shifted to the dark blue once more, like they had inside, taking me by surprise. His wolf is lingeringโ€ฆ "What is wrong, Miles? Do you want me to get Jordan?" I asked. "No, I do not! I do not want anyone to know this." He snarls, a growl slipping from his mouth, though whether that was aimed at me or whether his wolf was angry at him, I do not knowโ€ฆ "I don't think I understandโ€ฆ" I began. "You soon will." He sneers, and I simply look at him in confusion. Nothing he says makes sense to me. Until he continues. "Only today did I realize. The thought makes me sick. Why our moon goddess would play a trick like this on me, I don't know. I am an Alpha. I deserve a strong mate. A beautiful mate to be proud of. Not some feeble pathetic wallflower." My body trembles at his words. No. I had yet to gain my wolf. I did not know this yet. Whyโ€ฆ Why him of all people? "I am your fated mate?" I question with a shaky voice. "Are you sure?" "Are you doubting me?" he yells. "And you won't be. The moment you have your wolf, I will decide when the time is right to reject you." Why would my mate want to reject the mate chosen for him by our moon goddess? Am I truly so repulsive? LEARN_MORE https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12547&u Indulge in story https://www.facebook.com/61552702618591/ 831 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Learn More 0 befant.com DCO https://befant.com/market/buenovela/3?lpid=12547&utm_campaign={{campaign.name}}&utm_content={{campaign.id}}&adset_name={{adset.name}}&adset_id={{adset.id}}&ad_id={{ad.id}}&ad_name={{ad.name}} 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/450666456_7583887815071657_7648628923100297835_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=100&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=cBMo9t4XpfYQ7kNvgFDXjQJ&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AFKyDNR02NSPrMqKVF_KONu&oh=00_AYD_vap62ULeAeoNrFqnSRCpAhqRbCF04oYhZgw61g5JtA&oe=673071B0 PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 Indulge in story 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete
2,357,198
/src/Template/Ads/index.ctp (line 281)
'{"alias":2356703}'
Yes 2024-11-05 17:27 active 1727 0 Reserve Your Seat Today Want a chance to learn from some of the best YouTubers our there?๐Ÿคฏ Right now, you can reserve your seat in our upcoming webinar + gain FREE access to our YouTube Guide. This is your time to hear from ๐™ฉ๐™๐™š ๐™š๐™ญ๐™ฅ๐™š๐™ง๐™ฉ๐™จ and gain priority access to the TubeBuddy Accelerator.๐Ÿš€ ๐—ง๐˜„๐—ผ-๐—›๐—ผ๐˜‚๐—ฟ ๐—ช๐—ฒ๐—ฏ๐—ถ๐—ป๐—ฎ๐—ฟ: Join our TubeBuddy accelerator and get ready to learn from Creators who have taken channels to the next level and have amassed over 40M+ views. ๐Ÿญ-๐—ฌ๐—ฒ๐—ฎ๐—ฟ ๐—ผ๐—ณ ๐—ง๐˜‚๐—ฏ๐—ฒ๐—•๐˜‚๐—ฑ๐—ฑ๐˜† ๐—Ÿ๐—ฒ๐—ด๐—ฒ๐—ป๐—ฑ: Get a full year of our most powerful tools with the TubeBuddy Legend license. Unlock features designed to grow your channel, streamline your process, and maximize your impact. ๐—ช๐—ผ๐—ฟ๐—น๐—ฑ ๐—–๐—น๐—ฎ๐˜€๐˜€ ๐—œ๐—ป๐˜€๐˜๐—ฟ๐˜‚๐—ฐ๐˜๐—ผ๐—ฟ๐˜€ : Learn directly from industry-leading creators whoโ€™ve mastered the game. Theyโ€™re here to share the exact methods and insights that have driven their success. ๐—ฃ๐—ฟ๐—ผ๐˜ƒ๐—ฒ๐—ป ๐—ง๐—ฟ๐—ฎ๐—ถ๐—ป๐—ถ๐—ป๐—ด ๐— ๐—ฎ๐˜๐—ฒ๐—ฟ๐—ถ๐—ฎ๐—น๐˜€: Walk away with training materials that work. These resources are designed to provide long-term value, guiding you step-by-step toward measurable results. SIGN_UP http://fb.me/ TubeBuddy https://www.facebook.com/TubeBuddy/ 41,529 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 0 0 0 0 0 0 Sign up 0 fb.me IMAGE http://fb.me/ 1969-12-31 18:00 https://scontent-iad3-2.xx.fbcdn.net/v/t39.35426-6/465691704_1061880642330007_3643908068716527062_n.jpg?stp=dst-jpg_s60x60&_nc_cat=103&ccb=1-7&_nc_sid=c53f8f&_nc_ohc=lEvxdurCThwQ7kNvgHejcFz&_nc_zt=14&_nc_ht=scontent-iad3-2.xx&_nc_gid=AKcYflIS11w3vyhj8Msb_62&oh=00_AYAsK8j7dhDO5nmQ-1q5jOIh8J1r4A3ubI5iL3v066pGuQ&oe=67308BDE PERSON_PROFILE 0 0 0 TubeBuddy 0 0 1969-12-31 18:00 View Edit
Delete

Page 7 of 87, showing 20 record(s) out of 1,728 total

Download CSV New Ads